Blossom in Winter - Melanie Martins
Blossom in Winter - Melanie Martins
Blossom in Winter - Melanie Martins
OceanofPDF.com
MELANIE MARTINS
BOOK I
OceanofPDF.com
CONTENTS
Prologue
Chapter 1
Chapter 2
Chapter 3
Chapter 4
Chapter 5
Chapter 6
Chapter 7
Chapter 8
Chapter 9
Chapter 10
Chapter 11
Chapter 12
Chapter 13
Chapter 14
Chapter 15
Chapter 16
Chapter 17
Chapter 18
Chapter 19
Chapter 20
Chapter 21
Chapter 22
Chapter 23
Chapter 24
Chapter 25
Chapter 26
Chapter 27
Chapter 28
Chapter 29
Chapter 30
Chapter 31
Chapter 32
Chapter 33
Chapter 34
Chapter 35
Acknowledgments
About the Author
OceanofPDF.com
Melanie Martins, LLC
www.melaniemartins.com
All rights reserved. Except as permitted under the U.S Copyright Act of 1976, no part of this publication may be reproduced,
stored in a retrial system, or transmitted, in any form or by any means without the prior written permission of its publisher, nor be
otherwise circulated in any form of binding or cover other than that in which it is published and without similar conditions being
imposed on the subsequent purchaser.
OceanofPDF.com
DISCLAIMER
OceanofPDF.com
To all of you, my dear readers.
Thank you.
OceanofPDF.com
“There is nothing worth living for,
unless it is worth dying for.”
- Elisabeth Elliott
OceanofPDF.com
PROLOGUE
“I want a divorce.”
Roy doesn’t seem surprised by my announcement. After all, our
relationship has been superficial. Empty, to say the least.
“I see,” he replies quietly.
My eyes are drawn to the flames, but the crackling logs in the fireplace
do nothing to dispel this cold silence that seems to mirror the harsh winter
outside.
“And I bet you want fifty percent of everything I’ve worked so hard
for…”
My husband lets his words trail off as he leans against the doorway of
our living room, perfectly dressed in a three-piece suit like always. Despite
being only thirty-eight, he already has salt-and-pepper hair and wrinkles
under his eyes—probably due to the constant stress from work.
Coming from a modest family, Roy is known on Wall Street as a
respectable, self-made, well-mannered gentleman and a brilliant,
hardworking hedge fund manager. With a light stubble, short haircut, dark-
brown eyes, and height over six feet, he’s also very charismatic—the type
of man whose presence alone is intimidating.
“I don’t want your money, Roy,” I snap, before emptying my fifth glass
of sauvignon blanc. “I just want to divorce you. Go to New York, go to your
lovers, and leave me and my daughter alone.”
“You know that’s not possible, Tess. I refuse to leave Petra with you.
And with your drinking habits, no judge will ever grant you custody.”
Consumed with hatred and rage, I throw my glass in the fire, where it
shatters instantly. Then I turn to face him—hopefully for the last time. “You
won’t take my daughter, Roy. Never!”
Petra was unexpected. Roy never wanted a child. He loves finance,
money, and power. That’s it. He also likes women, but less than his circle of
friends.
Ironically, the last thirteen months have shown how attached he is to his
daughter. More than I ever expected.
I know Roy has many friends, mainly from the oldest and most
powerful families in the Netherlands. With his network and connections,
going against him will be a hard battle. A battle I’m not in a position to win.
They will destroy me, paint an ugly reality to the judge.
And who knows if the judge would be a member of his entourage, a
friend of a friend, or a close friend himself…
“Tess, let’s be rational,” he begins while moving toward me. “Let me
take care of our child.” His hands hold my arms. “I’ll get her a great nanny.
She’ll have the best education at the best private schools. I’ll personally
make sure she visits you regularly here in Rotterdam.”
I look down, pondering his words.
“You can even keep the house. I’ll give you a generous alimony for the
rest of your life. We can reach a good agreement. Beneficial for both of us
and, more importantly, good for Petra.”
His voice reassures my mind, but not my heart. Tears start rolling down
my face. I don’t want to let her go. New York is far. Too far. Petra is the joy
of my life. My only child. My little angel, as I call her. But how can I fight
against Roy Van Gatt and his multimillion-dollar lawyers? How can I fight
when I’m an alcoholic who doesn’t want to get help?
I’m lost, depressed, and broken. Worst of all, I feel powerless. Totally
and utterly powerless. There is no alcohol that can drown the pain of a
mother losing custody of her child. But despite my unconditional love for
my daughter, I know I can’t fight back.
I put my head on his shoulder and let myself cry.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 1
“Good morning, Ms. Van Gatt. It’s seven a.m.” Janine flings the curtains
wide open, killing the darkness of my tranquil night. “Such a beautiful and
sunny morning.”
But I don’t dare to open my eyes just yet. I love sleeping and I hate
mornings. In fact, I sleep so deeply that no alarm has ever worked, so
Janine has become the only way to get me ready in time for school. Her
sweet and musical voice makes every morning sound like a good one, no
matter how cold, rainy, or ugly the day can be. I've often wondered what
it’d be like to have a mother who’s here on a daily basis, and Janine seems
to be the closest to what I imagine.
“Would you like to take breakfast on the terrace? Your father is waiting
for you there.”
“Dad’s here?” I stand up abruptly. “Good morning, Janine.” I put on my
slippers and excitedly head out to meet him.
Dad’s sitting at the breakfast table, reading The Wall Street Journal.
He’s already dressed in his usual three-piece suit and just finishing his
espresso.
“Good morning, Dad.” I give him a quick kiss on the cheek.
“Good morning, Petra,” he replies. Noticing that I’m still in pajamas, he
lets out a breath in annoyance. “How many times have I asked you not to sit
at the table dressed like that?”
“I know, I know. But I need to talk to you before you go. You got home
too late last night.”
“Sorry, I got overloaded at work.” Pfff, the classic reply. “But tell
me”—he closes his paper—“what do you want to talk about?”
“Can I have a sleepover at Emma’s this Saturday night?”
Dad chuckles, looking awkwardly playful. “Oh, Saturday night? Hmm,
isn’t it the farewell party that night?”
I roll my eyes and try to protest, “You always know everything. How
did you know that?”
“Emma’s father called. He personally invited you to the party.”
“So does that mean I can go?”
“Well, he told me there will be no alcohol served, no drugs, no
cigarettes, and they’ve made sure the only guests invited are mature and
well-behaved. So I said I’ll think about it.”
I’m feeling as anxious as ever. “And?”
Dad sneers. “And the answer is no, Miss. I know Emma very well. She
clearly paid someone to sound like her father. I’m not that stupid.”
“Emma would never do such thing.” Would she? “How can you be a
hundred-percent sure it wasn’t him? Wasn’t he calling from his phone
number?”
“He was. But then I called her mother, and she had no idea about the
party.”
Damn, that really was Emma. “I’m sure there’s some sort of
misunderstanding. Maybe Emma just spoke to her father about it…”
“Why don’t you tell me the truth? Maybe if you do, I’ll even let you
go.”
It sounds like a lie, but I take the risk anyway. “Emma is hosting a party
to celebrate the end of the semester Saturday night. It’s just a simple,
casual, innocent party.”
“You lie even better than me. Almost believed you.”
“Dad, it’s the truth. And, let’s be honest, I’m sure if I do anything
wrong, you’ll have plenty of people ready to report with pictures and videos
in order to fall into your good graces.”
“Indeed. If you do anything wrong at that party, I’ll find out, Petra,” he
says sternly. “Is James going?”
My heart skips a beat. “James?”
“Yes, that boy you went to the theater with instead of doing your
homework at Emma’s.”
I ignore his nasty comment. “He is. But we are just friends. We’ve never
done anything.”
“I know that too. You know boys are a stupid and useless distraction,
don’t you? A total waste of time. You need to be focused on your upcoming
internship and starting at Columbia in the fall. I don’t want to be
disappointed. I graduated with honors from there. I expect you to do the
same,” he repeats for the thousandth time.
“I know that. I’m totally focused, don’t worry.”
He nods and ponders a bit further. “Well, since you got the best grades
in your class, I’ll let you go—”
“Thank you, Dad!” I immediately interject.
“—for two hours!”
“What? I can’t even stay at her house?”
“Don’t ask too much, young lady. I’ll have Anthony pick you up at
midnight sharp.”
Located at the corner of Eighty-Third Street and Park Avenue, Loyola is
walking distance from home, no longer than twenty minutes straight on the
sidewalk. And yet, Dad has always insisted that either Janine or one of his
drivers brings me to school.
The first class of the day is English. I love English class. It’s one of the
few I have with Emma. We always sit beside each other. Can’t wait to tell
her the good news.
“Hey, babygirl,” Emma greets from her seat. But I smile timidly at
James first—he is right behind us.
“Hi, Emma.” I sit beside her.
I can feel everyone staring and commenting about my smile and
unusually good mood.
“So? Are you coming to the party tomorrow night?”
I nod, victorious. “I have to leave at midnight, so you better start early.”
“You go, girl!” Emma holds me tight in her arms.
“Emma, I can’t breathe. Stop hugging me like that.”
“Hey, folks! Petra is coming to the paaaaartyyy!” she screams while
everyone’s waiting for Ms. Williams.
The class starts applauding, laughing, making strange noises, and in the
back, some unpleasant comments emerge. “Looks like Ms. Virgin is going,”
I hear someone sniggering. “Finally, Ms. Prudish is doing something with
her life.”
“No way. Are you seriously coming?” asks James, taken aback. But I
don’t reply; I feel so humiliated by Emma’s behavior. Sometimes Emma’s
too much to handle.
I lean closer to her and lower my voice. “Are you on drugs? That’s
confidential.”
“Oh, relax, babygirl. I got everything under control.” Then she
whispers, “My parents are going away for the weekend. Believe me, we’re
gonna have sooo much fun. I managed to disconnect the video cams so
they’ll never find out what we do there. And no smartphones are allowed at
the party.” She narrows her eyes, her lips twitching into a sly smile. “You
and James will have a good time…”
I gasp and hit her arm playfully. “Stop it, Emma. You’re freaking me
out like that. I promised Dad I wouldn’t do anything wrong.”
“I know, I know… But we only live once, right?”
James
The sharp song of the school bell happily announces the end of the
semester. Petra has her driver waiting outside, as always. And while the
majority of students are going out to celebrate, others have far more
important things to do, like me and my buddies who’re heading downtown
to a very private meeting.
We usually go to the cafeteria or library to discuss, but this time, since
it’s a special reunion, we’ve decided to meet at an unpretentious and
discreet restaurant, far from Loyola and our respective houses. We’ve even
removed our jackets in order to not be recognized by our uniform badge.
“Well, gents,” starts Fred, the oldest one and captain of our football
team. “We’ve got an amazing party ahead. And looks like the Van Gatt is
coming…”
We all snigger.
“James, she likes you, right?”
“I don’t know, bro. We just went out once, and we didn’t even kiss…
That chick is fucking weird.”
“If you had a father like hers, believe me, you wouldn’t even look at
girls,” adds Kevin. “I heard he hired private detectives and spies to follow
her. Even the staff at school is paid to report to him.”
“Rumors, Kevin. Those are just rumors,” I protest.
But Kevin seems to know all the gossip better than anyone else. “I don’t
think so, James. You know, she only came to Loyola because her mother
intervened.”
“Guys,” Fred interrupts. “Petra Van Gatt and Emma Hasenfratz are the
wealthiest girls at Loyola, and they’re best friends. We can make a lot of
money from both of them.”
I slyly raise my eyebrows. “Emma said there will be no cams and no
smartphones allowed… What are you thinking?”
By the smile on his face, it looks like Fred has got a plan. “I’m gonna
help Emma prepare for the party tomorrow afternoon, and I’ll hide an
iPhone in the bathroom. During the party, James will bring Petra to one of
the bedrooms, and hopefully she’ll already be sloshed. Kevin, you’ll go to
the bathroom, grab the iPhone, turn it on, and hide it in your pocket, then
you’ll discreetly open the door and record James with Petra lying on the
bed, maybe already half naked, kissing each other, and more if we’re lucky.
Once you’ve got the video, you send it to our WhatsApp group. Simple,
right?”
“What are you gonna do with that video?” I ask, perplexed.
“Blackmail the ladies, of course.”
“What! Are you kidding? I’m out, bro. That’s insane,” I snap.
“Look, we can ask for three hundred thousand dollars as blackmail. One
hundred thousand in easy money for each of us.” Kevin and I glance at each
other. “Fuck, just for a simple video of you and that chick kissing. Not bad,
right?” But I’m not convinced and shake my head. “Oh, c’mon! Don’t tell
me you can’t do it.”
Seeing the hesitant look on our faces, Fred puts his hands on Kevin and
me, bringing us closer to him. “Guys, Emma told us this is the last party
she’ll have before going to Europe. It’s our last shot.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 2
If there’s one thing Ms. Hasenfratz is known for in New York, especially
among college students and young spoiled brats, it’s throwing the most
amazing and exclusive parties. Her parents usually go on a weekend
getaway once a month, leaving her at their big estate in the Hudson Valley
all to herself. Indeed, Emma lives forty-five minutes from Manhattan. As
long as no scandals hit the news on Monday morning, Emma believes that
she can do, in theory, whatever she wants. Her parties have therefore
become a much-anticipated monthly event.
Emma prides herself on keeping a strict guest list, creating an
irresistible desire to attend for outsiders. But not even in her parents’
wildest dreams would they imagine that their daughter is also known to
drag the best drugs in town to her parties.
Despite Emma’s denial, some rumors say she has already sold her body
for cocaine. But who knows for sure? Rumors are rumors.
However, this party will be a very special one. Every guest will be
checked at the entrance, their smartphones taken, and no one can bring any
alcohol or drugs. Security has also been reinforced. After all, it’s not every
day that I’ll be attending.
Emma once admitted that she’s always found my reserved and
introverted nature fascinating. Weirdly enough (or not), we’ve always been
the opposite in everything. While she loves sports, mainly baseball, I love
arts and literature. Emma likes noise and people. Me? Silence and solitude.
When someone asks how we can remain friends with such opposed
characters, Emma always replies, “In our differences lies our strength.” It
even became her life motto—and the first tattoo on her left inner forearm.
Emma loves tattoos, but she has to hide them due to the strict dress code
policy at school.
Plus, let’s face it, being an only child, Ms. Hasenfratz is spoiled—very
spoiled. Her parents have never said no to her desires. Except once when
she wanted a nose piercing, which she ultimately did anyway. But, unlike
me, Emma’s never gotten good grades. Her parents are known for making
generous donations to the school, thus keeping everyone supportive of her
continued attendance. In fact, what Emma loves the most is partying—this
is her stage, her reign, and she is the queen.
We finally reach the front entrance to her house.
Looking out, it feels like everyone is staring. They probably never
thought I’d truly make it.
One of the security guards opens my door. “Good evening, Ms. Van
Gatt. Welcome to the farewell party.”
“Thank you,” I reply, getting out of the car.
“As you may know, the rules for this event stipulate that we need to take
your phone. You’ll get it back once you leave.” I hand the security guard
my iPhone and am ushered into Emma’s house.
I’m wearing the cocktail dress Janine found for me, along with stilettos
for the first time, and guess what? I even put some more makeup on!
“Look at her dress, so insipid and dated just like her,” I hear in the
background.
But I can’t blame them. After all, what is “Loyola’s most mysterious
and introverted girl”—yes, that’s how they described me once in the school
paper—doing at such a wild party?
“Babygirl, finally! Can’t believe you made it!” Emma screams, coming
toward me, her arms wide open.
“I know! It’s crazy to be here!” We hug each other tightly, as we always
do.
“Wow! Are you going to the prom or what? You look like a virgin from
the fifties. Is this all for James?” Emma finds herself amusing, but me not
so much. “I’m joking. You look gorgeous.” She gives me a quick kiss on
the cheek. “You smell fucking good.” But looks like it was enough to catch
my new jasmine fragrance. “Come with me, I’ve got something for you…”
She drags me by the hand, and we go to a quiet corner where no one can
see us.
Emma opens her clutch and takes something from it.
“A joint? Emma, you know perfectly well I don’t smoke.”
“Oh, c’mon! A joint is nothing. You need to enjoy. This is your first
party, after all.”
“No, really. Stop.” I reach her hand before she can light it up. “Don’t
smoke it near me. You know if Dad finds out, I will get in trouble.”
“Pfff, fine. Always so strict. Anyway, what do you want to drink?”
“Hmm… Do you have orange juice?”
Emma guffaws and hugs me tightly again. “Of course, babygirl. Orange
juice. I’ll find you some.”
While Emma heads off, I size up the party. There are already over two
hundred guests spread out from the living room to the terrace and pool area
—probably the biggest party Emma’s ever hosted. The DJ’s now playing a
famous R&B song and the crowd becomes euphoric. Some people have
been pushed into the pool, along with an inflatable unicorn. Three girls who
are clearly wasted scream out loudly before splashing in the water. Two
other guys are starting a fight for no apparent reason. On the other side of
the terrace, I can see a group, including Carol and Laura, who are having a
heated contest involving tequila shots. The loser has to strip naked before
jumping into the pool. And, understandably, not a single smartphone to
record it. I barely know anyone here, and while I try to remain as friendly as
possible, I've never felt like the subject of so much gossip. My dress seems
to be the biggest talking point of the night. Looking around, I understand
why—all the girls are wearing shorts, miniskirts, bikinis, or even tiny
dresses that just cover their butts.
Ah, finally! Emma, a cigarette between her lips, comes back to the
terrace holding two glasses.
“What is it?”
“Well, orange juice. Isn’t that what you wanted?”
I start to drink but frown at the taste. “Are you sure?”
“Not really,” she replies with a malefic grin and a wink. Not reassuring!
“Enjoy your life, babygirl!” She gives me another quick smooch on the
cheek. “Oh! Look who’s here.”
I discreetly follow her stare.
“James,” I gape. “I’m not sure if I can do it.” My heart begins
thundering nervously fast. I decide to drink half the glass at once.
“Of course you can. He likes you. You like him. It’s all good. Fred told
me James came here only to be with you. C’mon, just talk to him and see.”
She turns me around, pushing me toward him.
I’m speechless. I want to run far, far away from him. James’s wearing a
slim white shirt, making his biceps even more prominent, tight jeans, and
matching sneakers. He looks so cute! He gazes at me and smiles. I smile
back, my cheeks flushing.
I reach out to Emma again. “Emma, please start talking to me so it looks
like we’re engrossed in conversation. I think James is coming over here.”
“How old are you, babe? Seriously, you’re nearly eighteen, and yet you
behave like a twelve-year-old.” She looks over my shoulder. “Hi, James.”
“Hi, Emma. Nice party!”
“Thanks. Petra wants to speak with you. She thinks you look very hot
tonight.”
I can’t believe it! WTF, Emma? “Emma, stop.”
But James smiles, obviously flattered.
A hand on my shoulder, Emma leans over to whisper to me, “He’s all
yours. Have fun.”
Oh God! I finish my drink and give her my empty glass before she
leaves.
“I never thought you’d come,” he begins while moving closer to me,
hands in pockets. “Honestly, I’m impressed.”
“I thought I’d never come either,” I reply, the nerves flowing through
my veins.
“Is this your first party at Emma’s house?”
“Without my dad or her parents around, yes.”
“Damn. Why is your dad so overprotective?”
I laugh as I try to think of an answer. “I don’t know. Maybe he’s scared
of what he can’t control.”
“Well,” he says, his eyes lost in mine, “if I had such a beautiful
daughter, I might also be crazy-protective.” I smile, speechless, and lower
my gaze. “Would you like to walk around the gardens?”
“That would be great.”
He offers me his hand. I gladly accept, and, walking hand in hand, we
slip away from the party, the stares, and all the noise.
After strolling around for a couple of minutes, his words finally break
our silence. “I heard you won't be joining the girls for their annual
vacations…”
“Indeed. I’ve got an internship starting next month.”
“So it’s true? You’re really gonna work until you start Columbia?”
“Well, yes, as an intern, but it’s a paid job.”
His lips twitch into a smirk. “Of course, at Gatt-Dieren Capital, right?”
I frown at his tone. “Right...”
“Oh. That’s not work, then.”
“Why not?”
He chuckles. “Let’s be honest, your dad just got you this job to keep an
eye on you.” I ponder his words as he slows down his pace. “You know,
Emma and her friends have never worked with their parents. They know
working with family only brings trouble.”
“Well, technically I’ll be working for him. But I’ll be part of a group
with other interns, and we’ll have a supervising manager. Dad won’t be
around.”
“Will your supervising manager know who you are?”
“You mean, will he know I’m Roy’s daughter?” He nods. “Hmm, I
guess so… Should I fake my last name?”
“If you want him to treat you as an equal among your peers, yeah.
Otherwise he’ll treat you differently.” He sniggers. “Just like a little
princess.”
“You’re right. I don’t want that. I want to use this opportunity to get
experience, start making my own money and career.”
“And here we go, Ms. Van Gatt sounding so annoyingly mature.” I
giggle, shaking my head. “Seriously, though, don’t you ever think about
having some fun?”
We stop walking. We are already a fair distance from the party,
immersed in the vast garden, lit just with some mellow lights and the stars
above.
“But I am having fun,” I reply, my voice soft.
He takes me in his arms and looks steadily in my eyes. “Last time we
met, you left quite abruptly from the theater.” I smile, lost in his closeness.
“If I remember correctly, we didn’t even have time for a kiss.” He gently
moves some of the strands of hair covering my face, probably because of
the breeze, and with his hands holding my cheeks, he slowly bends down to
touch my lips, giving me a slow, tender kiss. I can’t help but blush—it’s the
first time someone has kissed me on the mouth! I close my eyes, reveling in
his touch and smell. My mind is bouncing in excitement. I kiss him back,
longer this time. Then we embrace each other, my heart melting from our
first kiss. I did it! We kissed!
“I’d like to show you something,” he whispers, taking me by the hand.
“It’s a surprise.”
I feel light-headed, flying like a butterfly. I love surprises! We walk in
silence back to the house and finally reach the door of a guest bedroom.
“You’ve got to close your eyes first,” he instructs.
I do so.
He opens the door and escorts me inside. “Okay, now you can open
them.”
The entire room is lit with candles, rose petals have been scattered
everywhere, and a bossa nova soundtrack is crooning in the background.
“Oh, James,” I gasp, my heart pounding so loud and hard. “It’s
wonderful!” I kiss him again.
As we head to the bed, he continues kissing me and helps me lie down.
With our excitement growing with every breath, he starts to unbutton his
shirt, and I find myself helping him to strip it off. He knows I won’t do
more than cuddles and kisses, but even so, it’s still a big milestone for me.
Emma Hasenfratz
I’ve just gotten a phone call I don’t like at all. It’s from my security. Alert
code “intrusion” has been activated. My mind’s going wild, and I’m feeling
fucking betrayed. Why can’t everyone simply follow the rules of this party?
I’m currently winning the tequila contest against Fred and have managed to
drink over ten shots. A record so far! But I’ve got to excuse myself and
leave the terrace with a fake smile. I run inside the house, flying through the
corridors but keeping quiet so not to be heard. I’m glad to see two of my
security guards already there waiting for me, hidden near the wall of the
guest bedroom. When they see me arriving, they nod at each other as a
signal.
“Don’t move! Drop the phone now,” screams one of them, pulling his
gun out.
Jerk Number One, aka Kevin, drops his iPhone in shock and puts his
hands in the air. I grab it from the floor and find exactly what I expected.
Enraged, I step right into the bedroom, turning on the lights. “Sorry to
bother you, babygirl, but James is a fucking asshole!”
Jerk Number Two, James, is already shirtless on top of my bestie,
devouring her mouth, their faces sweaty, her hair messy. They stop
immediately at the sound of my voice.
She pushes him aside instantly. “Emma! What do you mean?”
I lift the iPhone and play the video for both of them.
Petra gasps and covers her mouth in disgust. The video is five minutes
long, explicitly showing everything they’ve done so far.
“How did you get this?”
One of the security guards brings Kevin inside.
“Unfortunately, I believe Kevin, James, and Fred are in this together,” I
reply.
“We’ve already apprehended Fred, Ms. Hasenfratz. One of our guards
has him. Carol and Laura are also on their way to take care of Ms. Van
Gatt.”
“Perfect, thank you. Take James to the basement and tie him to a chair.”
“Yes, Miss,” replies the security guard, moving toward him.
“Don’t touch me! Emma, I can explain,” shouts James as he’s led by
force out of the bedroom. “Please, Emma! Please!”
“Emma, what are you gonna do?” asks Petra.
“Ah! Here you are, Fred.” I cross my arms at the sight of Jerk Number
Three. Brought in by another guard, his hands are already tied behind his
back. “So, I believe you are the mastermind behind this little operation,
aren’t you? But the real question is why? Let me guess… Jealousy?
Money? Revenge?” But Fred remains mute, his stare absent and cold.
Kevin too. I have to scare them. “Your little friend James is already tied
down to a chair in my basement. He’ll be bleeding very soon…” The duo
starts to tremble but don’t say a word. Jeez! I’m getting fucking impatient
with their little game. “Aright, folks, if you don’t tell me the truth, I swear
I’ll make sure your bodies get flogged like Jesus Christ on the cross!”
Fred keeps quiet, but Kevin starts to crack. “Please, Emma, don’t beat
me. It was all Fred’s idea. He wanted to blackmail you and the Van Gatt for
money… Please don’t hurt me. I swear that’s the truth,” he finally fesses up.
“For how much?” I ask, intrigued.
Kevin swallows hard, looking down. “Three hundred thousand dollars,”
he mumbles.
Babygirl remains sitting on the bed, her face frozen. I can see her blue
eyes watering and her little heart wounded by what she just heard. Oh boy.
It really hurts me to see her like this.
“Wow. So you thought humiliating my bestie during her very first
romantic encounter would be worth making a few bucks, huh?” I nod
thoughtfully. “Very well. Take them all to the fucking basement!”
“Please, Emma,” interrupts Fred. “Kevin told the truth. You already
have the phone. I promise there are no other copies of the video. Please
don’t hurt us. We’ll disappear from your lives and do no harm.”
I finally sight my girls stepping into the room. “Ah, Laura, Carol, please
take Petra back to the party. She has been absent for too long. I don’t want
rumors to spread.” Then I look back at my security guards. “Get these two
jerks out of here.”
“So you really thought you could blackmail us, huh? You fucking bastard!”
James has been tied down to a chair, shirtless, and already bears some
red-and-blue bruises from where I’ve been hitting him with my baseball
bat. I never allow my temper to come out, but this time, and with the help of
tequila shots, I snapped and I’ve got an uncontrollable urge to make an
example of him and his squad. Heck, he’s crying, sobbing, begging me to
stop. But no one can hear him. The basement is too far from the party.
“Emma, enough!” I hear screaming from behind me.
“What the fuck are you doing here, Petra?”
She glares at me in horror. “Are you crazy? Enough! You’re gonna kill
him!”
“Oh c’mon, I just hit him a few times. Don’t exaggerate,” I protest,
before dropping the bat.
I grab James by the hair, pushing his head back. “No one messes with
my friends, are we fucking clear?”
“Clear, Emma, clear,” he replies, his voice broken and body shaking.
“That’s Ms. Hasenfratz, you poor fool!”
“Clear, Ms. Hasenfratz, clear.”
I call my security guards. “You guys can release him and escort him
back to his tiny apartment, God knows where.”
They untie James and drag him away.
Babygirl keeps reproaching me with her stare. “Petra, I’m sorry for all
of this. But I can’t stand jerks like him.”
“You didn’t need to be so violent,” she rebukes.
“He deserved to be taught a lesson,” I snap back. “In a week he’ll be
fine.”
She sighs in annoyance, head shaking. I hold her by the arms and look
straight into her eyes. “Petra, we are best friends. Don’t tell me you’re
gonna be mad at me just because I wanted to protect you?”
“I know we are. But you’re nuts sometimes.”
I roll my eyes. “Fine,” I spit out, crossing my arms. “Next time, I’ll just
kick him in the balls.”
We burst into laughter. There is nothing better than hearing her giggling
after this incident.
She glances quickly at her watch. “I have to go, it’s getting late. My
driver will be outside in a minute. Do you still want to meet tomorrow for
brunch?”
“Of course.” We hug each other longer than usual but always so tight.
“I’ll always have your back, babygirl,” I whisper in her ear.
“I know you will,” she murmurs.
Dad was right. James was not worth it. At the first opportunity, he betrayed
me for money. I feel so stupid. Even naive. I’ve been so careful and
selective, and yet I’ve fallen for the wrong guy. He was cute, attentive, and
had a good reputation. How could he do such a thing to me? Dad was right
from the beginning: boys are a useless distraction and not worthy of my
time. I’m so heartbroken that I want to cry, but I can’t. Anthony, his driver,
could see my reaction and report it. I’m definitely not in the mood to be
questioned about my tears.
“Here we are, Miss,” he announces, dropping me off at the entrance of
my building.
“Many thanks, Anthony. Have a great night.”
Entering into the entryway of the house, I remove my shoes to remain
noiseless and head to my bedroom.
Oh God, I can’t believe I gave him my first kiss. I’m wounded,
disappointed, but also quite relieved we did nothing more than kiss. I can
still feel where his warm hands caressed me, and it sends a chill down my
entire spine. Yuck! The thought of his mouth now feels so repulsive that I
shiver. I take off my dress, remove all my makeup, and get into the shower.
I want nothing more than to get rid of his smell. Afterward, I light a fire in
the living room. Once the fireplace is burning brightly, I take the dress I
was wearing and throw it inside, hoping somehow it’ll extinguish his
memory once and for all.
“Good morning, Miss. It’s ten a.m.” Janine spreads the curtains wide, her
voice always so sweet and welcoming. “We are lucky; today the sun is even
stronger. You should definitely go outside and get a tan.”
“Hmm…”
“Ms. Van Gatt, kindly wake up. Don’t forget you have brunch at eleven
o’clock.”
I sigh, timidly open my eyes, and pull back the blanket. “Alright,
alright…” After some hesitation, I finally stand up. “Good morning,
Janine.”
She stares strangely at me. “So?”
“So what?” I ask.
“How was the party?”
“It was fine, thank you.”
“Just fine?”
“Yeah. Disappointing,” I add, keeping it short.
“Oh, I see…” Janine doesn’t ask further. “By the way, your father
would like to talk to you. He’s in his office.”
My heart skips a beat.
Office talk means serious talk. What can Dad possibly want to discuss?
I just hope no one has spoken to him about last night’s incident. How can he
already know anyway? Did he really send some spy to the party? Did Fred,
Kevin, and James talk to him? I take a deep breath, trying to calm down,
but my heart is already racing with anxiety and fear. Nevertheless, I head to
his office, ready to face my demons. You got this, Petra. It’s all good.
The door is closed. Not a good sign.
I knock.
“Come in,” he orders icily.
“Hi, Dad.” I quietly step inside, putting on my most angelic and
innocent face.
“Ah, Petra. There you are. I need to talk to you. It’s very urgent.”
This is it. My last minute on earth. He knows everything! “Sure. What
is it?”
“Please close the door and have a seat.” His face remains rigid. I
swallow hard. “Well, as you might know, I’m turning fifty-five in four
days.” Nope, I didn’t remember. “Therefore, I’m hosting a dinner gala this
Thursday evening at Gotham Hall. Everyone will be there. Hedge fund
managers, bankers, stakeholders, government officials, even the media.
We’re expecting around seven hundred guests. I need you to be present.”
“What? Dad, you know I hate your dinners and parties full of old folks
and kiss-asses.”
“Watch your mouth, young lady.”
“And what about my panic attacks?”
Dad lets out a sigh. After all, he knows perfectly well that it has never
been easy for me to attend his social events. Every time I do, it’s an
agonizing experience, a painful personal challenge, and a huge mental effort
to prevent panic from setting in.
I was eight when I suffered my very first attack. It was at a Christmas
dinner organized by his company. The event had gathered over five hundred
guests, including journalists, photographers, investors, family members,
politicians, and more. After being in the room for one hour constantly
stared at, interrogated, photographed, and forced to fake smiles, my heart
accelerated briskly, like it could explode at any moment. Breathing became
harder and harder until I couldn’t stand it any longer, and I ran away to the
restroom. I cried, locked in one of the stalls, and threw up. Later on, I was
diagnosed with agoraphobia—the fear of crowds and of feeling trapped,
helpless, and embarrassed among strangers. Since then, I’ve been under
medication and therapy, and my father has never insisted on having me at
his social events ever again—his birthdays either.
“You can bring Emma with you; she loves attending parties.”
“Emma’s presence is mandatory,” I assert. “But I have one more
condition…”
He raises an eyebrow suspiciously. “And what is it?”
“Can I skip the dinner and just stop by when it’s over? Like, just for the
picture?”
“Hmm… Promise me you’ll really attend. I want at least one photo with
you. Can you do that for me?”
“I guess so.”
“Perfect. I’ll have a limo pick you up at ten p.m., then.”
I roll my eyes. I hate limos. “Deal. But Emma comes with me,” I
remind him before standing up and making my way out.
“Oh, by the way...” Crap! I turn around to face him. “I forgot to ask,
how was the party?”
“The party was… great.”
“Perfect. Glad you enjoyed it. See you later.”
Every Sunday, Emma and I meet at eleven o’clock sharp for our brunch at
the St. Regis, just off Fifth Avenue. It’s a ritual we cherish dearly.
While most New Yorkers go to the trendiest restaurants for brunch, we
prefer the ones served in hotels, as they usually feature a more international
clientele rather than a local one. After all, hotels provide more privacy, and
we are far less likely to be accosted by local acquaintances, bloggers,
reporters, or hangers-on. Emma’s already at our table, drinking black
coffee, when I arrive. As usual, she looks so incredibly fashionable,
sporting a large Gucci T-shirt and a fine black choker necklace; her mid-
length black hair and bangs are also perfectly styled. My eyes keep darting
down to my own outfit. I feel, as always, underdressed in a plain light-blue
shirt, skinny jeans, flats, and my usual barrette.
“Hey, babygirl.”
“Hi, Emma. How are you? You look wonderful,” I reply, sitting in front
of her.
“Alright, alright... What do you want?”
“Nothing. I just think you look great.”
“I always look great, darling, so what is this about?”
“Oh gosh, you know me too well.” Emma smiles. “I need you to come
with me to a party Thursday evening.”
“Yeah, right. Your parties are not really my thing, babygirl.”
“Actually, it’s Dad’s birthday party. I need to go, but I can’t make it
without you.”
“What? Ha ha. Your dad is definitely not someone I…” She looks down
at her coffee, trying to find the right words. “He’s not someone I
particularly get along with,” she finally finishes.
“I know, but he’s inviting half of Manhattan, media included. It’s a gala
dinner at Gotham Hall, and unfortunately I need to go.”
“Oh boy. Gotham Hall? That’s gonna be huge, then. What about your
panic attacks? Are you gonna be alright?”
“I’m just going there for a few minutes to say hi and leave. But I need
you with me, Emma. I can’t do it alone.”
Emma has never liked my father and his overprotective, strict, rigid
behavior, but I know I’m too dear to her heart. She folds her arms and
ponders for a moment, just enough to create her usual suspense. “Well,
what wouldn’t I do for my babygirl?” My face instantly glows with a big
grin. “But promise me we’re there for half an hour max.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 3
My heart starts racing as the limo drops us right in front of the main
entrance to Gotham Hall. The venue is so spacious that it can hold up to
fourteen hundred people. My father has rented it for several events over the
years, but this one will be the very first I am attending.
We’re welcomed with a red carpet covering the grand marble stairs up
to the door. After giving our names, we go to the first floor leading to the
ballroom.
Everyone looks quite posh and glamorous. The gentlemen are either
wearing a three-piece suit or a tux, while the ladies are in long gowns paired
with overpriced glittering jewelry and extravagant hairstyles. I feel invisible
with my simple fit-and-flare black dress and matching heels—which is
honestly a good thing. I forgot to wear the white pearls my father once gave
me. But I couldn’t care less about this event anyway.
Standing with Emma by the entrance, I start looking around to find Dad,
but there are at least forty tables spread across the dark ballroom and
something like four hundred guests sitting and two hundred standing. I
don’t recognize anyone. The music is festive and a remix from the fifties,
“Gotta Find a New World” by Al Green, is playing. The crowd looks
enchanted. Couples are dancing as the waiters mingle among the guests
with flutes of champagne. And photographers are flashing their lenses
towards everyone and anyone—especially those standing in dark corners.
“Here we are, babygirl. Hmm…” Emma scans the room for her next
prey, just like in a hunt. “Too many old men here. Where are the cute
executives? Oh! Look that guy over there.”
I couldn’t care less but I pretend I do. “Where?”
“Between the blonde and the brunette at the table on the left.”
“I don’t see any guy there. Just women…”
Behind us amid the giddy female laughter, there is a particular
masculine voice that sounds familiar. My ears perk up instinctively. I know
this voice! I shut my eyes for an instant, walking down my memory lane.
It’s a voice from my childhood, but who? Nevertheless, with so much noise
interfering, it’s way too hard to remember. I reopen my eyes and try once
more to find Dad for the infamous picture.
But the voice comes back and persists. This time louder and giving me
goose bumps. I turn around, trying to put a face to that voice once and for
all. To my surprise, all I can see are the rears of three women standing
beside the marble stairs in front of him. After walking a bit to my left,
finally his figure emerges...
I gasp and blink twice to be sure I’m wide-awake. “Alex?” I mumble.
“Who?” Emma asks.
“Nothing.” I turn back at her voice. “I’m gonna get a drink.”
“I’ll go with you.”
“No, that’s fine. I can manage.”
But I’m not getting a drink. I cross the entire ballroom, take the door on my
left, and head back to the entrance to check once more. It cannot be him.
But the voice, the face…
My heartbeat starts pounding faster with every step. The closer I get to
the entrance, the louder I can hear the laughs of those women.
I’m now close enough to see.
What? Is he really back?
My jaw drops at the sight of him, and I find my eyes blinking faster
than they should.
Wow. I realize I haven’t seen him in ten years!
Alexander Van Dieren is standing near the marble stairs surrounded by
attentive ladies. Sporting a tailor-made black tux, he looks even better than I
recall. Unbelievable. It’s really him. I don’t remember him being so lean, his
shoulders so wide, and tall—well over six feet. However, I do remember his
sharp, stubbled jawline, his charismatic presence, and his rugged
appearance. His smile hasn’t changed either—always so charming and rare.
His stare is mysterious and piercing as always, and with those irresistible
blue eyes, he’s hard to forget. In fact, he’s the only man I know with the
same eye color as me. His mid-length hair has retained its brown sheen, still
so thick, dense, a bit wavy and wild. I remember how his girlfriends loved
to play with it, brushing some strands to the sides or behind.
His face has a healthy hue, looking tanned like Dad’s. I, on the other
hand, have always been the fairest of the family, “like snow white,” they
would joke.
I feel my eyes watering from staring for so long, my heart thundering,
and my stomach burning. He really is back. That’s why Dad wanted me
here. To surprise me, I think with a smile.
Mr. Van Dieren is Dad’s best friend, utmost confidant, and business
partner. Oh, and he’s also my godfather. Although he’s fifteen years
younger than Dad, they are both inseparable, just like brothers. They met
twenty years ago when Dad was one of the portfolio managers at the Van
Dieren’s family office in the Netherlands. And since Alex had always
wanted to make a name for himself, away from his family business, they
decided to join forces and start their very own investment firm: Gatt-Dieren
Capital, with offices in New York and Amsterdam.
I spent a big part of my childhood with him. We used to go to the lakes
in Central Park to feed ducks and swans, to the beach in the Hamptons to
build sandcastles, and to Aspen to ski. In fact, he even taught me how to
ride my first pony. I was pretty scared of ponies and heights at the time. Oh
boy. He was so caring, supportive, patient, and funny. When it rained, we’d
watch cartoons while eating marshmallows until late. I mean, I would be
eating the marshmallows; Alex doesn’t like sweets. He was also present the
very first time I ever painted.
But all of a sudden, when I was seven, Alex got a new girlfriend—
Amanda Parker. And from that moment on, he didn’t come back to play
with me. When I finished my first painting, I was so proud. I wanted to give
it to him and show him how talented I was. But he never came back to pick
up his gift.
Days passed, then weeks, and ultimately months, and it was like he’d
gone from my life forever. I would often ask Dad about him. Did I do
something to upset him? Do you know if Alex will come back? Dad just said
Alex had some personal obligations and had returned to the Netherlands.
But Alex never wrote or even called. I can still remember the terrible
sadness and pain I endured when he left, feeling so empty, so betrayed.
After all, what kind of godfather disappears like that?
I feel tears coursing down my face, just like when I turned eight and he
didn’t come to my birthday. I dry them quickly and look for a restroom
nearby. I’ll leave the party right after I freshen up.
“Ah, Petra! Finally, here you are,” shouts Dad. “I would love to
reintroduce you to someone you haven’t seen for ages.”
“Dad, thank you, but I’m very busy now.” There is no way I’d meet him
again. He’s dead, buried, and well gone.
“Such nonsense," he protests, holding my arms, but I refuse and free
myself.
“I have to go to the bathroom. I’m sorry.” And in a fraction of a second,
I disappear from his sight, running away.
In the ladies’ restroom, I’m finally alone. Yes, totally alone. Phew! Solitude
is such a good friend. I glance at my face in the mirror. I’m pale, white like
a ghost. I open my clutch but realize I only have gloss in it, and no
medicine whatsoever. I should have listened to Janine. I take a seat in the
chair next to the sinks, and breathe.
“Hello, babygirl!” Emma steps in with a big grin on her face. She stands
in front of the mirror, adjusting her dress and push-up bra. “You have no
idea who your daddy just introduced me to.” I ignore her. “The hottest man
alive. Seriously, that Dutch man is so hot. Have you seen him? With that
sun-kissed skin, and his smell? His scent would drive any woman crazy.
Can’t believe Roy has such a hottie friend. What’s wrong, Petra? You look
pale. Are you alright?”
“Hmm… I’m not feeling that well.”
“A panic attack? Now that I was finally having fun? You need to chill,
girl. Did you take your medicine?” I shake my head. “You know what? You
need to meet that hottie. From what I understand, he just moved from
Amsterdam and is separated,” she adds while applying some blush. “He’ll
need some company here in New York. Can I hit on him, or do you want
him for yourself? I mean, no offense, babygirl, but he needs a confident,
strong, and experienced woman with whom he can have some fun, you
know. And you are not really… well… the right fit.”
I couldn’t care any less. I just want to be alone in this goddamn
bathroom. “He’s all yours, Emma. I have no interest to even see him.”
“Okay, great. Problem solved.” She closes her makeup palette,
triumphant. “Now, why are you so pale? Do you want me to call a doctor?
Janine maybe? Do you want water? Some blush?”
“No, that’s fine. I’m gonna go home and rest.”
“Alright, alright…” Emma mumbles while styling her hair once more.
“Don’t worry, babygirl, it’ll pass.” She checks the overall look and shape of
her dress. “Well, I have a man to catch. Laters.” And, satisfied, she leaves.
I heave a sigh of relief. Emma talks way too much. In silence, I’m
finally breathing again. I look at my pale, skinny figure in the mirror, splash
some fresh water on my face, take a deep breath, and remain there for five
more minutes, savoring the precious quiet, before facing my worst enemy—
the crowd. A crowd like tonight is hell on earth to me. From the loud music,
hypocritical people, and fake smiles to the judgmental stares, irritating
laughter, and nasty comments behind my back... Argh! I can’t stand it any
longer. My head feels like exploding. Probably a headache. I have to go
home. After all, no one will be there to bother or force me to meet people I
don’t want to. People like Alex, who disappears for ten years without
saying a word.
Making a quick exit, I head to the front entrance and find a black
executive Mercedes S-Class with a driver waiting outside. Such luck. I race
down the stairs, greet the man who opens the rear door, and hasten to sit
before anyone can see me. He closes the door behind me and sits in front.
“Five-Fifteen Park Avenue, please,” I instruct. Finally inside! I made it! I
heave a sigh of relief, but suddenly hear the rear door from the other side
opening.
“Ms. Van Gatt?”
“Mr. Van Dieren?” I gasp before swallowing hard. “Oh, I’m so sorry. I
didn’t know it was your driver. I’ll take another one.” Looking a bit farther,
I can see that Alex is alone. Where’s Emma?
“Nonsense, kindly stay.” He gets in and sits beside me. I can smell his
perfume quite sharply. Damn. It’s exactly the same from my childhood.
“Same destination for me, please.”
And before I can open my door, it locks automatically and the car starts
moving. Shit.
“It’s been such a long time. You look”—he checks me out from top to
bottom—“well… different.”
“Ten years,” I snap.
He annoyingly smiles. “Such a grown-up now. I bet you don’t watch
cartoons anymore.”
Ha ha, so funny. “Indeed I don’t. I’m into reading, riding horses, and
painting.” I’m so mad at him, but keep the conversation polite nevertheless.
“What brought you to New York? Dad’s birthday? Work? Women?” But my
tone is not as polite as I wanted, rather annoyed, defiant, and nearly rude by
the end.
“Many things, Ms. Van Gatt, many things… Your dad’s birthday, work,”
he adds. “I’m undertaking a new job here at the headquarters.”
“A new job? So you are moving here?”
“I am. By the way, why didn’t I see you at the party?”
“I was… not feeling well… so I only went in briefly.”
He puts his hand on top of mine, smiling at me. “It’s great to see you
again, Petra.”
But I move it straightaway. “Thanks… it’s great to see you too.” No, it’s
not! After ten years you come back and think it’s all forgiven? My head is
pounding, my heart thundering, the acid in my stomach boiling, and I take
some heavy breaths. Argh! I want so badly to ask him why he disappeared
ten years ago, why he didn’t ever call or write. Why did he never visit me
again. But instead, I give him a freezing smile and decide to keep it to
myself. After all, the best weapon is to remain indifferent to him and his
return. However, it’ll be hard. Emma is right—dear Lord, he’s really hot!
What? Petra! I clear my throat and immediately brush such thoughts away.
“Did you manage to meet Emma?”
“Emma? Is she a friend of yours?”
“Yes.”
“Hmm, I do remember a young girl with a dress way too tight around
her chest and with way too much makeup on...”
We burst into laughter.
“That’s her. Definitely Emma. She was into you, I guess…”
“What? How old is she? Eighteen?”
“I think so.”
“Dear Lord.” He shakes his head, letting out a sigh. “Girls nowadays are
unbelievable. I could be her father.”
“You could... but you are not.”
“Well, kindly tell her I’m not into teenagers.”
“Alright, I will. By the way, and I know this is none of my business,
but… what happened with Amanda? I heard you separated?” He cringes at
the question, bothered. I love it.
“Always so straightforward... just like your father.” A small smile plays
at the corner of his mouth and I find myself mirroring it. He seems to be
searching for words while looking absently at me. “Let’s say she wanted
more from me than what I could offer.”
“Like what?”
His jaw drops at my insistence. “How can you be so direct and
persistent at such young age?”
I can’t help but titter. “I believe I grew up with someone like that.”
“Indeed. If Roy were a woman, his character would be exactly like
yours. It’s frightening. But to answer your question, your indiscreet
question, I must say, she started to talk about kids and golden rings… you
know, the usual.”
“You guys have been together forever.”
“Ten years.”
“And after all that time together, you preferred to break up with her than
settle down?”
“Since it was not what I wanted, yes.” He pauses. “We had a serious
conversation and realized we wanted different things in life. I told her if
marrying and having kids were so important to her, she should find a more
suitable partner. After all, it wouldn’t have been fair to remain together.”
“Pfff, seems like Dad with his lovers.”
“Your dad shares his love stories with you?” he asks, surprised.
“Sometimes. He doesn’t want to, but I manage to make him speak…”
“You’ve got great interpersonal skills, Ms. Van Gatt.” He gives me
another corner smile, his gaze still pinned on me, but I look down
instinctively. “Enough about me. What about you? What are you going to
do after high school? Your father told me you’ll be joining our summer
internship? I thought you wanted to be a painter.”
“I was seven when I said that,” I rebuke. “Anyway, it’s much harder to
make it as a successful artist than as an executive.”
“Why not take the risk?”
“Oh, c’mon, and starve until then?” I shake my head. “I still paint as a
hobby, but that’s all. I’ll be starting at Columbia University this fall with a
major in economics.”
“Columbia? So you’re not going to live on campus, Ms. Van Gatt?”
I know he’s mocking me, but I get his point. “Um, Dad is not too keen
on any university that has me living away from home. And frankly, after
visiting some campuses such as Cornell’s, I’m not too keen either.”
Alex chuckles. “Well, it’s not your penthouse on Park Avenue, that’s for
sure.” And he remains thoughtful for a while. “Is this internship really what
you want?”
“Here we are, Five-Fifteen Park Avenue,” the driver announces.
“Perfect. Thank you very much. Have a great night,” I reply. We both
open our respective doors and leave the car. “You have an apartment in the
same block?”
“No, I have a house outside the city. But I’m renting a condo nearby.
I’m just waiting for Roy. He asked me to meet him here.”
“Alright. Then I’ll show you my atelier.”
“You’ve got an atelier?”
“Yep. I paint there, and it’s like my private space. Neither Dad nor
Janine, our housekeeper, can enter. I lock the door, you know.”
“That’s interesting.”
We enter the building and greet the doorman before taking the elevator
to my apartment.
“Wow. It’s so different. So much more modern,” exclaims Alex while
stepping out into the entryway.
“You like it? I asked Dad to change the entire interior design. It was so
old and antiquated. It took us five months.”
“What about Roy’s office and library?”
“Well, we kept the old Churchill feeling of it. After all, it’s Dad’s
favorite part of the house.” His smile gets wider, and a glint of amusement
settles in his gaze. “Now, let’s see the best part of the house.”
I invite him upstairs and unlock the door to a vast room full of paintings
and books. An old record player is on the carpet with vinyls spread around,
a desk with a Mac on the left, and a vanity space on the right turned into
storage for my oil paints, tools, and brushes.
“Beautiful space you’ve got here. Disorganized but beautiful.”
“See? I still paint,” I say while showing him all my paintings including
my newest, unfinished work.
“And your dad never comes here?”
“Nope, or Janine. This is my refuge.”
Hands in his pockets, Alex starts looking intently at my most recent
ones. “You’ve made some good progress…” he utters with his usual
sarcasm.
“Pfff, very funny,” I reply. “Look at this one. It’s my favorite.”
“Indeed, not bad. Do you sell them?”
My eyes widen in surprise. “Um, no.” I let out a quick giggle. “Who
would buy them anyway?”
“You could open a gallery and invite your father’s friends and network
for a preview. With the number of journalists we know, we could get you a
lot of—”
“Thank you, Mr. Van Dieren,” I interpose. “I truly appreciate it, but my
father already got me this internship, and I want to focus on that for now.”
“Very well. If you—” His phone starts ringing. After checking who’s
calling, he decides not to take it. “I’m sorry, Ms. Van Gatt, but I have to go.
Your father must be waiting for me downstairs.”
“Sure. Have a great evening.” I smile, trying to hide my disappointment
in seeing him leave… again. Pfff. He wasn’t meant to be here anyway.
He reaches out, takes my hand, bowing slightly, and gives it a kiss.
I feel a shiver running down my entire spine. No one has ever done that
before. I try to appear as unaffected as possible.
“It was an honor seeing you again, Ms. Van Gatt. I wish you a great
night.”
I swallow nervously, still feeling his lips on my hand, and reply with a
timid smile, then I escort him in silence to the entrance. I open the door—it
feels heavier than usual.
“Oh, by the way”—he looks back at me—“I invited your dad to a
dinner tomorrow at my estate. It’s going to be mostly executives in their
forties and fifties talking about the most boring subjects, but if you are
interested, you are most welcome to join.”
As he calls the elevator, I smile at the doors instantly opening.
“Thank you, Mr. Van Dieren. I appreciate the invitation,” I reply
politely. “Have a great evening.”
We gaze at each other for a moment—the moment before the elevator
closes completely on him.
Phew! He’s finally gone.
I remain stationary against the door while drowning dangerously in my
once forgotten childhood memories. Did my godfather really come back?
Did I just see him again?
I pick up my iPhone and start a text message to Emma: The Dutch hottie
invited me to his house for a dinner tomorrow. Should I go?
What am I doing? Oh God, so stupid of me! I delete the message
straightaway. Indeed, Emma has nothing to do with it. Plus, if she knows
about the invite, she’ll try to join me just to hit on him, which would annoy
everyone at the gathering. It’s a formal dinner after all, not a party.
It feels quite strange to see Petra again. Damn, she grew up so fast. I mean,
ten years. Although she’s older, her big blue eyes and cheeky smile remain
exactly the same. Her curiosity is as annoying as it is funny, just like before.
She’s so skinny though—does she eat properly?
“Ah! Here you are,” calls Roy, his face beaming with joy, as I step
outside.
“So, Roy, where are we going? Can you tell me why we needed to meet
here?”
“I didn’t want the journalists to follow. Get into the limo.”
I let out a sigh. “You know I hate limos.”
“You’re in New York now. Get used to it. C’mon!”
He looks quite excited as I get inside and close the door behind me.
Strangely enough, there is no one in the limo but us. He gives me a glass of
champagne, a big grin on his face, and we toast.
“I have a surprise for you,” he says. “It’s waiting in your condo.”
“A surprise for me? But Roy, it’s your birthday, not mine.”
“Consider it a welcome gift to the States.” I take another sip—a failed
attempt to stop my curiosity from taunting me. “Once we get there, don’t
mention either your first or last name, or mine. Okay?”
I raise an eyebrow. “Okay…”
And my curiosity keeps growing.
When the limo pulls up on my block, Roy barely contains his
excitement. We get into the elevator and go up, and since he has a spare key
to the condo, he opens the door and we step into the hallway.
“Wow.” My heart skips a beat at the sight of my gift. “Now that’s a
surprise.”
Roy closes the door behind us and walks in her direction. “Do you like
it? I named her Lucy. A blonde, sun-kissed, with brown eyes, just as you
like.” I actually have a penchant for the opposite, but since the birth of his
daughter, I’ve never told him.
I keep staring at Lucy as she remains kneeling on the floor of my
entryway, naked, head down, legs spread apart. I like her pussy—it’s all
shaved. She’s already wearing a collar and leash, along with wrist and ankle
restraints, but I’m not pleased with the design. I’ll have to get her a new set.
“She’s the most experienced I found. I already trained her to call you
what you like,” he adds.
“Can I talk to you for a second?”
Roy and I walk a few steps down the hallway, and in a low, barely
audible voice, I ask, “What kind of arrangement is this?”
“Don’t worry.” He puts a hand on my back. “It’s by session. No strings
attached, no real names, no problems. You just have to text her to make a
booking. It’s that simple. And while I know you have an obsession for
condoms, she is also tested and totally clean.”
I heave a sigh of relief.
“And how experienced is she?”
“You can do whatever you want. She’s the best at it. I’m sure you’ll like
her.” Roy throws me a confident smile, and I find myself returning it.
“Thank you.” I also put a hand on his back. “That’s one hell of a gift. I
feel terrible I didn’t bring one as good for you.”
“Of course you did; my best friend is finally back.”
Friday. The first Friday without school. For me, it feels awkward to know
I’ll no longer attend any classes at Loyola or wear the clothes that have
been my uniform for so many years. We’re notified that the graduation
rehearsal is set for the twenty-eighth. I look at the e-mail with a wistful
smile and let out a sigh. Before getting too nostalgic, I decide to meet
Emma at her estate for a day of horseback riding. After all, she’s always
been the perfect antidote at times like these.
We spend the day on the gallops. Then, after a wonderful afternoon, we
find ourselves lounging by the pool to watch the sunset and the pinkish
clouds settling in.
“Doesn’t it feel weird not to have classes anymore?” I ask. “I’m so used
to having a schedule.”
“Jeez! You’re crazy. I couldn’t stand it anymore. Finally free.” Emma
keeps staring at my pensive face behind her big sunglasses. “Don’t worry,
babygirl, you’ll have plenty of schedules during your internship and your
time at Columbia.”
My iPhone beeps. It’s a text from Dad: Are you coming to the dinner?
I’m leaving home in 90 mins.
Oh! The dinner at Van Dieren’s property. I had finally forgotten. It
seems so simple to reply, just tapping a yes or no, yet I feel undecided. On
one hand, this could be a great opportunity to meet executives working at
Dad’s company and break the ice with them. But on the other, I’m not
feeling comfortable enough to see him again. That terrible pain I felt when
he disappeared from my life is not something I can easily forget—or
forgive. He didn’t even apologize! He probably never felt bothered about
leaving me either. Maybe Alex was only being a polite gentleman keeping
an eye on his best friend’s daughter while Dad was absent. Pfff, I should
have never seen him again yesterday. Such a mistake…
Sorry, Dad, can’t make it, I text back. Ah, I feel so relieved afterward,
much happier. Such a weight off my shoulders. I smile broadly and pour
more tea into my cup.
But within a minute, Dad calls. “Petra, it’s Dad. How are you?”
“I know it’s you, I have your WhatsApp number. I’m fine.”
“Why can’t you join? It’d be a great opportunity to meet your
supervising manager and the rest of the board.”
“I know, but… I promised Emma I’d go with her to a gallery.”
“To a gallery? Emma doesn’t like art. Why are you lying to me?”
Shit. I think further to come up with a better excuse. “Well, to tell you
the truth, Dad… I think it’d be unfair to meet my manager before I start the
internship. See, I want to be evaluated by how I perform, not by whom I
know or met at the dinner. I just don’t want any privilege because I’m your
daughter.”
He remains silent for a few seconds.
“Very well. If that’s what you want. Where are you having dinner,
then?”
“Emma’s house.”
“I see... Be careful. Have a good evening.”
“No worries. Bye, Dad. Enjoy.” And I hang up. Phew, that was close.
“So”—I look back at Emma—“what have you decided to do after high
school and the summer?”
“I don’t know, babygirl, trying to find my path… Travel, for sure.
Maybe move to Bali or Europe, who knows…”
“I always admired that about you, you know.”
“Admired what?”
“Your adventurous, careless attitude. I never could’ve been like that, but
I do admire you for being you.”
“Oh, well. Life is short. You’ve got to enjoy it. Aren’t you hungry? I’m
starving.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 4
Despite being born and raised in the Netherlands, my family has owned this
manor in Bedford Hills for over a century. The estate is over twelve
thousand square feet surrounded by green fields and trees, with seven beds
and ten baths, including a pool, large gardens, a tennis court, and
overlooking a pristine four-acre lake. I became the sole owner fifteen years
ago. After being absent for so long, the manor needed some serious
refurbishment, which has been completed recently. When Petra was a child,
I decided to build horse stables on the other side of the estate so I could
finally share my passion for riding with someone. I always aspired to move
and live here one day, but life has decided otherwise. After ten years, it
feels good to be back.
It’s a beautiful and warm evening. Roy and I decide to go outside and
check out the new terrace. A blanket of bright stars covers the sky. That’s
what I love about the countryside—there is no pollution. With a glass in one
hand and a cigar in the other, we stroll around enjoying each other’s
company. We can hear the music and the laughter coming from inside. A
fresh breeze chills the atmosphere.
“So, what do you think of Lucy? Experienced enough for you?”
“Oh, she is great,” I reply. “Very naughty and obedient. We’re actually
in touch for a session tonight. Thank you so much for the surprise, Roy.”
He pats me on the back. “I’m glad.”
I smile at him, and we keep quiet as we walk.
But Roy’s heavy tone breaks our tranquil silence. “I need to ask you a
favor, Alex. I will return it anytime. You know me.”
We both slow our pace, until I stop completely. “That sounds serious.
What can I do for you, my dear friend?”
He takes a steady puff of his cigar. Roy has never disclosed much about
his feelings to anyone and has always preferred to show a strong exterior,
even if he’s devastated inside. He only lets down his guard with me. We
discuss everything, from work, love, fears, fantasies, crimes, money—no
woman has ever managed to be that close to Roy. Not even Tess, his ex-
wife. Nevertheless, expressing deep feelings and fears has always been his
biggest challenge. Roy doesn’t like to feel vulnerable or exposed. I know
him perfectly.
“Well, it’s Petra,” he admits. “I’m worried about her friends’ influence
on her. She’s only got frivolous girlfriends—you know, spoiled and slutty
brats. She learns nothing good from them.” He takes a sip from his glass,
his face looking more tormented than I’ve ever seen.
“You mean like Emma? Petra seems to be totally different than she is.
You have nothing to worry about.”
“She has been lying to me, Alex. My daughter is not like that. I’m afraid
Emma is a bad influence.” He sighs. “Now that you are back, as her
godfather maybe you could get closer to her, befriend her”—he gives me a
complicit smile—“and keep me updated…”
“You’re dreaming, my old friend. I might be her godfather, but Petra is
not stupid. There is no way she would trust me after being absent for so
long.”
“I’m sure she will. She needs a real friend, Alex, a confidant, someone
she can trust to advise her. You can be like the older brother she never had.”
An older brother? With a twenty-three-year age difference? Yeah, right.
Since I don’t seem very enthusiastic about the idea, Roy leans closer to me.
“Look,” he starts in a low voice. “No one knows about it, but Petra has
agoraphobia. That’s why it’s so hard for her to make new friends. She is
like a closed shell. Her only friends are Emma and her circle. When she’s
not with them, she’s locked in that room upstairs doing God knows what.”
“You mean her atelier? She’s just painting and reading in there.”
“How do you know that?”
“Well, she showed me.”
“See? She trusts you instinctively. She never let me in. Not even the
maid is allowed to clean the room.”
“I’m sorry, Roy, you’re my best friend and you know that… but I won’t
exploit her trust. I can’t be like a watchdog reporting to you her every move
and word.”
“I realize it might sound a bit overprotective, but I don’t want her to
become like them. She’s so smart, so rational and down-to-earth, and I
don’t want her to end up like her mother either. I want her to build
something meaningful, a legacy. She needs to remain focused.”
“She seems to be on the right path,” I still insist. But Roy is my best
friend after all, and he looks quite worried. I ponder further. While I’m no
expert on teen girls, why not at least give it a try? I come up with a
compromise. “Look, here is what I can do for you. As her godfather, it’d be
a pleasure to spend more time with Petra, but I won’t repeat to you anything
she tells me unless I deem it necessary for her protection. And I promise to
keep that Emma away.”
“Deal, my friend, deal. Thank you so much.”
We clink our glasses in a toast.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 5
The clock’s showing twelve thirty a.m. The room is dark and the entire
house quiet. I’ve already taken two pills to sleep, yet my eyes are wide
open. I’m tired of trying to fall asleep. Unfortunately, my thoughts are
strong enough to keep me awake. Was it the right decision to skip that
dinner? The fear of missing out (that FOMO everyone at school used to talk
about) is consuming me for the very first time. I’ve never questioned my
declines to parties, events, or dinners. And with my agoraphobia, I’ve
always felt it was the right thing to do.
Except this time.
I heard Dad’s tone at the end of the call, weird, cold, and maybe even
saddened. Is Dad disappointed with me? Did they talk about me over
dinner?
I check my phone. No messages.
Since I can’t sleep, I decide to call Emma. “Hi. Emma?” Loud house
music in the background makes it difficult to hear anything. “Emma?” I ask
louder.
“What’s up, babygirl?” Emma’s tone is more playful than usual. “Where
are you?”
“I’m home. Trying to sleep, but—”
“Hey, folks! Let’s pick up Petra! She’s awake,” she screams over the top
of the music. “Babe, we are going to an amazing after-party. You need to
join us. It’s in a secret basement!”
“I’m not sure about that… I just wanted to talk…”
“We’ll talk there! Let’s go, girl! You need some fresh air!”
I roll my eyes. “Okay, fine. I’ll grab a car and meet you there.”
“No, we’ll come get you, since we’re going to a secret address. Put
some sexy clothes on for once. I’ll be there in ten minutes.” And just like
that, Emma hangs up.
Holy shit! I can’t believe I’m gonna do this. I’m horrified, but at the
same time so excited to run away for a special night out. The adrenaline is
surreal.
I rush to my dressing room, scan my clothes, and try to find some sort
of inspiration for tonight. A white fitted T-shirt with V-neck seems like a
good option, maybe paired with a black jacket to give a more mature look.
And with those black heels I’ve got somewhere, it’ll be perfect. I wear my
favorite dark skinny jeans and put on some eyeliner and mascara, some
blush, and a darker-than-usual lipstick. The ensemble is missing some
jewelry, but I don’t have any. Oh! I recall Emma once offered me a black
velvet choker. It should be somewhere. Dad has forbidden me to wear it as
it looks way too promiscuous for his taste. Ah, I found it! I smile as I put it
on my neck, then give a glance in the mirror. Very nice, Ms. Van Gatt. You
look twenty-one for sure.
My phone beeps. It’s a text from Emma. She’s waiting downstairs.
Alright, you can do it. I sigh, but I’m decisive. Time to take some risks.
Dad might not even come home tonight. Everything will be just fine.
I leave the house, locking the door behind me just like it was. My head’s
going wild. I take the elevator, and while I’m going down, I pray I don’t see
Dad at the entrance. My heart starts thundering nervously as I watch the
digits decreasing. Oh God…
The elevator reaches the ground floor and the doors open.
Please, please, please…
Fortunately, there’s no one in the hallway. Phew! I run as fast as I can
outside, look quickly up and down the street, but don’t see any car.
“Babygirl, here!”
I follow the tipsy voice sitting behind a male figure on a black Harley-
Davidson. “What? Don’t tell me this is how we are going to the party?”
“Oh, such a baby. It’s alright, the party is not far. Don’t be scared, my
friends know how to drive them. Hey, Mike! You take Petra on yours,
alright? Be careful, motherfucker. She is my bestie, and I love her.”
I’m more than frightened to sit behind a total stranger on a motorcycle
to go to a secret party in a basement, but I trust Emma and need some
serious distraction. I sit behind Mike, he gives me a helmet, the motor roars,
and we drive away from Park Avenue.
It’s my first time on a motorcycle, my first time running away from
home, and my first time dressing so daringly. Feeling the fresh wind on my
body and face is such an incredible sensation. Even the sound of the engine
feels like freedom!
After a short twenty-minute ride, we stop in front of a traditional
Chinese noodle shop. We take our helmets off. Mike is tall and fit with
short blond hair and blue eyes, as well as a serious stare and figure.
“A noodle shop?” I ask, intrigued.
“Just follow us,” replies Mike in his accent, maybe Eastern European.
We go inside, greet the old Chinese lady eating a pack of noodles at the
counter, and head to a back door leading to what looks to be a warehouse.
We walk a bit further and find a velvet red curtain with a man in a black
suit standing in front of it. Mike says some words in a language I can’t
understand, and immediately the man lifts the curtain. I see stairs going
down to a barely lit passage. My heart keeps thundering. Mike leads the
way, and we follow.
We finally reach a black door. Mike knocks and someone opens it from
the other side. He greets the doorman, and we enter into a house club
featuring a big dance floor, chandeliers, and a young, flirty crowd. Girls are
dancing with each other in short, skin-tight dresses under dark lights.
“What do you think, babygirl?” screams Emma in my ear right before
draping an arm around my shoulder.
“You always know how to impress me,” I reply, my eyes taking in the
club and its occupants.
“Let’s go, girls!” Mike grasps my hand and I take Emma’s as we follow
him across the club.
We go upstairs to the area behind the DJ booth; the security guard lifts
the velvet rope and lets us in. This space is even darker, with no strobe
light, more intimate, but the tables are full. It looks quite pompous. Girls are
young, some maybe barely twenty-one. Most are probably my age. Shit. I
get it! This must be an illegal club. Oh God, I hope Dad never finds out.
Mike greets some friends who’re already sitting at his table. They all
speak in a language I can’t discern.
“What language is that?” I finally dare to ask.
“Ukrainian,” replies Mike. “So what do you think?” he asks, seeing me
visibly impressed by the place.
“I’ve never been to a club before,” I admit.
“It’s not just any club. It’s an exclusive one. You need to be a member to
get in. Garçon! Please bring us some bottles, two large Grey Goose, and
some sodas to start.”
Emma’s already quite drunk as she devours the mouth of her new boy toy.
From my side, I’m not having nearly as much fun. After being at this table
for an hour, I’ve found the place to be full of dubious-looking people, with
music that’s too loud, girls dressed like hookers flirting with creepy old
men, and drugs offered everywhere. To say the least, I shouldn’t be here.
Mike shows me a silver tray with fine white powder lines. “Do you
want some?”
“No, thank you,” I politely decline.
Mike turns the tray to his left. “Emma?”
“Oh yeah, that’s what I’m talking about.” Emma takes a one-hundred-
dollar bill from her pocket, rolls it up, puts it front of her right nostril, and
sniffs half a line. I know Emma’s into that. I know she likes to consume
drugs occasionally, “just for fun,” as she says.
My iPhone beeps.
I check the notification. It’s a new WhatsApp message from an
unknown number.
Curious, I open it.
It was a pity you couldn’t join. I’d have been delighted to see you again.
Hope you had a great evening nevertheless. See you soon, Alex.
What? I can’t believe it. Alexander Van Dieren texted? I check the
profile photo. Damn. Definitely him.
I add him as a contact. I’m actually embarrassed to feel so excited to
have his phone number, but after all, he’s my godfather—quite normal to
have it.
I text him back in a formal tone. Thank you for your kind message.
Have a great night. Cordially, Ms. Van Gatt. Perfect. Cold and distant
enough. A gentle reminder to fuck off.
“Your boyfriend?” asks Mike, handing me a new glass of vodka and
Coke, despite the fact that I didn’t even drink my first one.
“No. My godfather,” I reply.
“So no boyfriend?”
“Nope. No boyfriend.” I smile back. I’m not into him, but decide to be
polite with some small talk. “What about you? Do you have a girlfriend?”
But suddenly a security guard comes up to Mike and whispers in his ear.
Mike's face becomes blank, then livid, then terribly serious.
“We need to go,” he commands, standing up. I leap off the sofa
immediately. “Emma, Dimitry, we need to go.” His tone is quite severe. Not
a good sign.
We are escorted to a small door at the back of the club. We go out to a
dark, barely lit hallway. We start walking faster than usual, in a hurry to get
outside and reach the road.
“New York Police! Don’t move! Hands in the air!” screams a man
surrounded by six others. They seem to emerge out of nowhere, barring our
way.
“What the fuck is happening?” Mike stands with his arms raised while
an officer takes him down and handcuffs him.
“Dimitry Yurkovich and Mike Hawrylak, you are under arrest for the
possession and distribution of illicit substances, and for operating a
nightclub without license in the state of New York. You have the right
to remain silent and refuse to answer questions,” informs the officer.
“Anything you say may be used against you in a court of law. You have the
right to consult an attorney before speaking to the police and to have an
attorney present during questioning, now or in the future. Officers, handcuff
the ladies too.”
Oh God! Why us? I try to remain as calm as possible, breathing deeply,
but I’m already in tears. I can’t believe this nightmare! Are Dimitry and
Mike part of a gang or the Ukrainian mafia? I look back at Emma hoping to
find answers, but she’s so high that doesn’t even realize what’s happening.
She even giggles, hugs, and tries to kiss the police officer who’s
handcuffing her.
We’ve been escorted to the nearest police station in a separate car. As we
enter, Emma finally starts to feel the harsh reality. “We need your parents’
phone numbers here. And your IDs,” snaps the officer at reception.
“Yeah, right,” mumbles Emma, struggling to hold steady on her feet.
“All you’ll get is the fucking number of my attorney.” She grasps the pen,
bends slightly over the counter, and writes down her attorney’s information.
While Emma has always been very secure and confident, even in the
toughest situations, I, on the other hand, have no clue what to do. Heck, I
don’t even have a lawyer. Only my dad. No, definitely not him! I will never
write his phone number in a police station book. Dad will be so
disappointed, feel so deceived. He’ll even punish me. Probably forbid me to
see Emma ever again. What contact can I give them? I feel so anxious, my
heart stuck in my throat. Emma hands me the pen. Now it’s my turn, and
instinctively, I write down the only name I can think of.
Afterward, we are led to a cell by the same officer who drove us here.
The cell is small with two wooden benches attached to the walls—one in
front of the other. Empty, dark, and cold, it smells like aged sweat and
urine. Yuck! Disgusting. I can even hear flies buzzing.
He locks us inside.
What a nightmare.
Emma lies on the first bench she sees, closes her eyes, a hand on her
belly, and tries to contain the vodka that wants to come back up. She’s
beyond drunk—the mix of alcohol and cocaine has left her semiconscious. I
just hope she won’t throw up in the cell—the place’s already repugnant
enough. I sit on the other bench, head down in my hands. I have no idea
how long we’ll stay here. Ten minutes have passed, and yet it feels like an
eternity. I look up at Emma, who seems to be dead asleep, and then back
down again. My mind is lost and afraid, my eyes drop some tears. I dry
them quickly, but they return and roll down my face. Fuck, I’m done.
After being locked up for an hour, Emma finally wakes up and starts
searching her pockets, irritated. “Shit. They took everything. Not even a
fucking cigarette left.”
“Shut up, Emma,” I shout, still agonizing over my fate, my legs
trembling, head down.
Between panting breaths, I sob. “What am I gonna say to Dad? I’m
done, Emma. Done. He’ll never let me see you ever again.”
Emma stands up, tries hard to walk properly, and sits beside me, putting
an arm around my shoulder. “Shh... Babygirl, I promise we’ll get out of
here before your dad finds out.”
“I think it’s a bit too late for that.”
We both stare outside, startled by the interruption and the familiar voice.
I gasp in horror. It can’t get any worse!
“Alex? What are you doing here?”
“Mr. Van Dieren, please,” he corrects, standing on the other side of the
bars. He looks sharp and fresh in a black two-piece suit with a slim white
shirt, hands in his pockets. It looks like he just came from a party nearby.
“Don’t you think the question is more the other way around?”
“Does Dad know about this?” I ask nevertheless.
“Let’s get you out of here first, then we’ll talk, Ms. Van Gatt.” The
police officer unlocks and opens the cell, but I’m still confused. “Now,
kindly go to the car,” he snaps.
I look at Emma, wondering where her lawyer is. “Don’t worry, babygirl.
I’ll be fine. My attorney is coming soon.”
“Mr. Van Dieren, can’t you pay her bail?”
“Let me talk to Emma about it. Now go to the car. The driver is waiting
outside.”
I hug her tightly and leave the cell. As I pass by him, I can’t help but
smile at his fragrance—it feels so good to finally smell something other
than aged urine. The officer closes the door behind me, and I walk away.
Emma Hasenfratz
The Dutch hottie waits a few more seconds to be sure we are completely
alone before talking to me.
“Now, back to us, Ms. Hasenfratz. Your attorney, Anna Griffith, is not
coming anytime soon. I called your father and told him I’d take care of it. If
you want to go home tonight, you better stop.”
“Stop what?” I snap instantly.
“Stop pushing my goddaughter into your pathetic and dangerous
lifestyle.”
What? The Dutch hottie is Petra's godfather? Damn! “Who you think
you are, huh? You don’t command me.”
“I think I’m the one who knows more about you than you can possibly
imagine. And you, Emma? Who do you think you are? You think you are a
big girl because you hang out in illegal clubs, consume cocaine, and nearly
killed a poor guy with a baseball bat at your farewell party?”
My heart falls to the ground. I can’t believe it. How does he know all
that? Who did he pay for that information? My dad surely doesn’t know
about it.
“I told your dad I’d pay for your bail. Unless, of course, you want to
stay here until you’re heard by a judge. In what, two, three days?”
I frown at his threats, my mind boiling with rage. I cross my arms and
huff loudly. “Okay... What do you want?”
“Don’t drag Petra into your pathetic nightlife anymore. Are we clear?”
Fuck. No one’s ever talked to me like that. Not even my own parents.
What a jerk. Unfortunately, we both know I’m not in a position to negotiate,
so I have no choice but to accept. I nod icily.
Van Dieren calls back the officer to open the cell. I finally get out and
find my driver waiting outside. But I don’t manage to see babygirl one last
time before leaving. I just hope the Dutch hottie won’t say a word to her
Dad. Roy really might forbid her from seeing me ever again.
Neither of us dares to talk, nor even look at each other. Our silence is colder
than ice. Only the engine and occasional noise from outside can be heard.
Alexander remains distant and serious, looking intently out the car window.
After ten long minutes, I venture to ask again, in my most innocent and
sweetest voice, “Does Dad know?”
But he doesn’t say a word. I hear nothing but his breath. My heart feels
stuck in my throat, and I swallow hard.
“Not yet,” he snarls while staring absently outside.
Another minute of silence.
He lets out a sigh and turns his freezing glare at me. “You got really
lucky I texted you. What would you have done if you didn’t have my
number?”
My head remains down, but I can feel his judgmental eyes all over me
like sharp arrows stabbing my spine. “I seriously don’t know.” I swallow
my pride and face him again. Oh God. His stare is so disturbingly rigid.
“Please don’t tell Dad. I promise I’ll never do it again. I couldn’t sleep, and
Emma invited me out. I needed some fresh air. Please… it was the first and
last time.”
“Why should I even believe you? I don’t know you.”
“Because”—I look briefly around, trying to find a viable excuse
—“you’re my godfather.”
“Wow. So now you’re using the fact that I’m your godfather to hide this
entire situation from him? Very well done, Ms. Van Gatt.”
Pfff. Sarcastic asshole. “It would be our secret…”
“Why should I do it for you? I don’t see the point.”
“I can’t believe we are negotiating.”
“Of course we are. What do I gain hiding the truth from your father?”
“Um, what do you want in return, then?” I ask.
He keeps looking idly ahead with a thoughtful expression. Probably
amused by his little game, a smile escapes, but he tries to hide it by rubbing
a finger over his lips. “First, you won’t see Emma for any more nights out,
unless I’m around. That girl only brings you trouble. Second…” He pauses
briefly. “You’ll show me your favorite art galleries around New York.”
I blink twice before I can articulate properly. “Wait. What? You
could’ve asked a million things, but the one that came to your mind was
being your tour guide?”
“Exactly. Proper ones are very expensive nowadays. I’m sure you know
the best galleries to hang out in.”
Ugh. I cross my arms in displeasure. “I’m not sure if telling Dad was
such a bad idea after all…”
“I can always call him.” And he pulls out his iPhone.
“Okay, okay. I’ll take you to my favorite galleries, I promise. Please just
don't tell him anything about tonight.”
“You better have an excellent itinerary and surprise me. I’ve never
really enjoyed art.”
“So you like this artist?” he asks while slowly pacing around the gallery and
observing every piece of artwork I present to him.
I just hope I’ve described them with such passion and conviction that
he’s now wondering if I ate art books for breakfast.
“Mel Bochner? Oh, yeah. His work is excellent. I’ve been following his
growth since I was ten. I asked Dad to buy me one of his paintings at the
time, but he never saw the point. Seven years ago, one of his paintings was,
like, three thousand dollars. Now, the same painting would be worth fifty
thousand, if not more. Imagine if he becomes like Jeff Koons.”
“Jeff Koons?” He seems embarrassed. “I’m sorry, Petra. I know nothing
about contemporary art.”
“You don’t even know Jeff Koons? His art is the most expensive of any
living American artist. One piece signed by him is easily worth between ten
and sixty million dollars. Imagine if you had bought some when he was
starting out.”
“I see… Can I ask you something?”
“Sure,” I reply.
“Why economics? You love art so much. You are so passionate about it.
Why not a degree in this field?”
I don’t like his question, but I’ve thought this through. “I’ll inherit
Dad’s part of the company one day, so economics makes more sense. After
all, I’ve got to understand the ins and outs of his business.” I smile at him,
quite proud of my perfect answer.
“That’s a good reason, Ms. Van Gatt. But what is the real one?”
I can’t help but feel a squeeze in my chest. Alex always knew how to
read me, how to remove my mask… which was cute when I was seven, but
not now. “Dad thinks it’s the most appropriate degree. He assured me I’ll
like it.” I look up at him and add confidently, “I’ll give it a try and see.”
“Well, my proposal still stands. If you want to have your own gallery to
show your paintings or those of your favorite artists, I’ll help you out.”
I find it suspicious. Is your offer some sort of apology for the ten years
you’ve been absent, Mr. Van Dieren?
But I keep it polite. “Thanks, but Dad doesn’t like art. He thinks it’s a
waste of time.”
“Your dad is a bit close-minded sometimes. It could be a very profitable
business in my view—you can invest in emerging artists, buy their artwork
when they are not yet renowned, and once they become famous, their value
will go through the roof, just like stock and shares. Then, you can sell your
collection in auctions and to other dealers. If you present it as a business
model, Roy might like it more.”
“Oh, I never thought about it that way.” His lips twitch into a smile.
“Maybe that’s why he wants me to have a degree in economics.”
“Your father loves you a lot. He might be cold and rigid sometimes, but
he cares a lot about you.” I don’t reply. He looks down absently, thinking
something through. “Why don’t we do the following—you’re going to be
an intern with the investment team, right?”
“Right.”
“We should open a small fund for you. Nothing big— just, like, two
hundred and fifty thousand dollars so you can invest in your favorite
emerging artists. What do you think?”
My jaw drops. “Two hundred and fifty thousand dollars? Oh my! This
is… I… I can’t believe it.”
“Consider it your graduation gift.”
And to my surprise, I hug him. “Oh, Alex, thank you so much.”
He gasps, feeling my arms wrapped around his neck. “Alright,” he
breathes. I release him from my overly tight hug. He straightens his
shoulders, his face unsmiling. “But… I have some conditions. I want you to
pitch me what you have in mind before spending a dime. Are we clear?” I
nod. “You need to diversify your portfolio with at least ten different artists
and get the best deals out of each acquisition.” I feel him studying me. “As
a matter of fact, when you pitch someone, think numbers and data. They’re
the most convincing. To get a strong pitch, you’ll need to research similar
artists and the value their artwork reached and why. It’ll be very time-
consuming,” he warns seriously. “You’ll have to be able to justify every
investment and the potential returns.”
I ponder for a moment. “I’m sure I can get this done. I read a lot about
emerging artists and art trends. And since Dad is out nearly every night, my
best friends became my books and laptop,” I add.
“Great. Oh, by the way, there is a small luncheon at my estate after your
graduation rehearsal. And no, you cannot skip it, since it’s in your honor.”
“Why on earth would you organize that for me? It’s totally
unnecessary.”
“Hey, it’s not every day my only goddaughter graduates from high
school.”
“Oh, dear Lord. Alright, but please, from now on just call me ‘Petra.’
‘Goddaughter’ sounds way too dated to my ears.”
“As you wish, Petra.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 6
Following the graduation rehearsal at Loyola and the usual family picture
with my graduation cap, gown, and degree certificate in hand, Dad and I are
on our way to Bedford Hills for the celebratory luncheon. Unlike the rest of
my female classmates, I’m not wearing a dress or skirt. Instead, I’ve opted
for skinny jeans, a striped white-and-navy-blue top, and a matching jacket.
I’ve decided against wearing heels too, just beige flats, and I have only the
tiniest amount of makeup on.
The drive to upstate New York feels like an eternity. In the back seat,
Dad is entertained reading while I keep constantly staring outside. “How
many people will be there?”
“Less than a hundred,” replies Dad, eyes glued on his iPad.
I let out a sigh. “Why such a big gathering?”
The car stops as we wait for the black metal gates to open.
“It’s just friends and acquaintances, don’t worry. You should get to
know those people, Petra. They run New York.” Oh God, why me? I’m not
impressed, it just feels like a tedious obligation. “Don’t forget to be polite
and to thank your godfather for the gathering,” he adds.
The car starts moving and drives onto the estate. I look again out my
window. I didn’t remember how vast the estate is, with large green fields,
acres of trees, and perfectly manicured lawns. Sometimes I feel jealous that
I can’t live like Alex or Emma on a property in the middle of nature—far
from urban and noisy Manhattan.
We finally arrive at the main entrance of the manor. I see that Alex is
already there, chatting with friends, drinking champagne, and probably
waiting for Dad. He’s resplendent as always, sporting a fit beige spring
blazer with a silk pocket handkerchief, a white shirt open at the collar, and
navy-blue pants—quite elegant but not formal.
Dad promptly walks toward him and gives him a friendly hug with a
clap on the back. “Many thanks for organizing this, Alex.”
“My dear friend, it’s the least I could do.”
As I predicted, I feel totally left out, standing timidly by the car, while
Dad has already gone inside, along my godfather and his friends. I look
around, taking in my surroundings. I can’t miss the rows of expensive cars
littered about the courtyard. Cars have never appealed to me—I’m glad I
don’t own any of them.
“Congrats on your graduation, Ms. Van Gatt.”
Having left his friends behind, Alex has come back and walks toward
me, causing my lips to spread in a smile.
“Thanks. Small gathering, huh?”
“Well… it’s all relative.” He winks at me. “Come inside, I will get you a
drink.” And he takes me by the hand.
“Am I allowed to drink alcohol today?” I ask, surprised.
“I don’t think so. However, I’m sure the bartender will prepare
something nice for you.”
He escorts me inside, softly putting his hand on the small of my back
and letting me go first. As I step into the entrance hall, a strange energy
shivers through my entire body. In my mind I can hear a little girl giggling
and running around, but there is no child to be seen here. Instinctively,
though, I knew it was me. I used to play here.
“Is everything alright?” He asks.
Oh, Alex, you have no idea how painful it was when you left. “Of
course.” I smile, silencing my childhood memories.
“Great. Let’s go to the bar.”
Alex is staring intently toward the entrance of the living room. Suddenly,
his face beaming, he runs forward a few steps and cheerfully greets a young
man, a stranger to me. They hug each other. “Hey! Here you are, my little
bastard.”
Bastard? Really? I didn’t know Alex had a son. They enter the room,
and Alex brings him over to where I’m standing by the bar, still baffled.
“Petra, I’d like to introduce you to my younger brother, Jimmy Van Dieren.
I mean, half brother, since we just share the same father. Jimmy’s a famous
pop singer now, so be careful—he’s becoming a total ass.” I gape at his
vulgarity, but laugh in relief.
Jimmy feigns offense, shaking his head. “He’s just jealous,” he replies
with a broad smile, before extending his hand. “Nice to meet you, Petra.
And congrats on your graduation with honors. Your father, and godfather,
must be very proud of you.”
I notice how Jimmy also has blue eyes. Looks like they share more than
the same father. He’s at least four inches shorter, though, and less athletic.
His style is also the opposite of his brother’s—Jimmy wears a black leather
jacket, some silver jewelry on his neck and wrist, black ripped jeans, and a
white V-neck T-shirt.
“Thank you, Jimmy. It’s very nice to meet you too.”
“Just be careful with him. My brother thinks all teens have a huge crush
on him.” Alex seems to be particularly witty today, but Jimmy can’t stop
shaking his head in amusement.
“Do you live here in New York?” I ask.
“Nope, Amsterdam. But I have a concert Saturday night in Manhattan.
Do you like pop?”
I don’t like pop, but with such an interesting male figure around, I
couldn’t care less what I really like or not. “Of course I do.”
“Well, then, you should come over. I’ll text you the address. What’s
your number?” He pulls his iPhone from his pocket, ready to add me as a
contact.
“That would be brilliant,” I lie. I’ve never ever attended any concerts,
because of my panic attacks. But I take his phone and type in my number.
“Added as Petra Van Gatt.” I can only hope I’ll have a private box to watch
the concert from.
“Great. Also…” Jimmy leans slightly closer to my ear. “I’m hosting an
after-party in my suite at the Four Seasons. Only A-list people. It’ll be fun,”
he whispers.
I feel a shiver running down my spine. While it seems fun to attend,
after all the bad experiences I’ve had lately, I’m not really convinced. I just
smile at him in return.
Alex didn’t hear Jimmy’s whispers, but he did see Jimmy getting a bit
too close for his comfort. “Alright, enough chitchat. Let’s go to the terrace.
Lunch will be served in a minute.”
We move from the living room to the outdoor terrace. Amid at least ten
round tables covered with white tablecloths, I find Dad waving at us from
one of them with three empty seats.
Alex nods. “Looks like Roy got us some seats.”
I don’t recognize anyone else at the table except Dad. They all look like
corporate executives—Dad’s friends in suits without ties. I’m glad Jimmy is
here. This lunch would have been so tedious and boring without him.
“Here she is! The star of the day!” Dad stands up, his arms wide open to
welcome me and give me a hug.
My face beams with joy. “Hi, Dad.” I trot toward him and embrace him
warmly.
“I’m very proud of you, darling,” he replies in a low, tender voice
before giving me a kiss on the forehead.
I sit between Jimmy and Alex.
Suddenly, I feel all these middle-aged men staring at me like the main
attraction in a fair. “Very well done, Ms. Van Gatt. Your father couldn’t stop
praising your achievements.”
Humbled, I tilt my head slightly down. “Thank you.”
I notice how everyone is drinking Pinot Noir but me. I only have a glass
of water and a cold-pressed juice in front of my place setting. I let out a sigh
but feel a sudden vibration on my lap.
Discreetly enough, I look down at my iPhone and read the new
WhatsApp message from Jimmy. Would you like to hang out after lunch? I
can grab a red from my bro’s winery.
I smile broadly and text him back: Yes, please!
While Petra entertains her father’s friends, collecting their business cards, I
sneak into the kitchen to throw away the empty bottle and put the glasses in
the dishwasher. My mind, however, is far away. I feel strangely attracted to
her energy. It’s so bright, so simple and pure. She’s such a mystery. An
enigma. A paradox. I feel her so contained and rigid, yet looking for
something more. A taste of freedom maybe? Some kind of romantic
adventure? Or… like a bud waiting for the right season to bloom into the
most beautiful flower. Damn, I grow hard at my own thoughts. Is she still a
virgin?
“Are you drunk?”
I jump, hearing a voice coming from behind me. “Jeez, bro. You scared
me. Of course not. I just drank one bottle with Petra.”
“Oh, really? So you steal wine now...”
But I’m not listening; my face is still beaming at the memory of that
girl. “You were so right, bro. That chick is so high end and fucking hot; she
gave me a boner in two seconds when we kissed. Most likely a virgin. This
dusty event was worth it after all,” I praise, clapping him on the back.
I’m expecting some sort of cheerful reaction, but instead, I get brutally
manhandled up against the dishwasher. “Look, you bastard, don’t ever talk
about Petra like that again! Are we clear?”
“Cool down, man. Is she your girlfriend or what? Oh… you like her,
don’t you?”
“Fuck, are you crazy? She is the daughter of my best friend, dumbass.
Did you forget I’m her godfather?”
“So what? You’re not even related. But I must tell you, when we kissed
by the lake and I slipped my tongue into her mouth, I bet her pussy got so
—”
Alex grabs my T-shirt and makes a sudden move with his fist. “One
more word and I’ll knock you into the middle of next week.”
“Alright, alright. You’re nuts sometimes. Jeez!”
He finally releases me, straightens his shoulders, and tries to regain his
composure. But his angry glare says otherwise. “Get the fuck out of here.”
Everyone has left except Dad and me. Since we’ve been enjoying a late
afternoon tea in Alex’s office, I decide to talk about Jimmy’s invitation,
hoping my godfather will be on my side. After all, Jimmy is his brother and
he is the one who introduced me to him.
“Dad? Jimmy is giving a concert followed by a party this Saturday
night, and he invited me. May I go?”
Dad seems uncertain. “What do you think, Alex?”
“I don’t think it’s a good idea,” he replies sternly. “My brother is a bit…
um… wild.”
“What? He seems perfectly fine. Please, Dad, I’ve never been to a
concert before.”
“Indeed, and I’m very proud the crowd doesn’t scare you.” He pauses,
thinking something through. “Alex? Would you mind joining Petra at the
concert?”
But I interject, “No! Dad, I can bring Emma and the girls—they love his
songs. We’ll be just fine. Please.”
“Petra, either Alex comes with you, or no concert and no party,” he
snaps.
Looking at his face, my godfather doesn’t seem too enthusiastic either.
“On a Saturday night? Roy, I mean… I’d love to, but I’ve got some
commitments.”
“See? Please, Dad. I can go with the girls. I swear I’ll be fine,” I keep
insisting.
“Sorry, Petra. I want a responsible adult with you. If your godfather
can’t go, then I’m afraid you’ll have to cancel.”
“No! That’s so unfair. Alex, bring your date to the concert, then.”
“To a teen concert?”
“To your brother’s concert. You should be more supportive.”
He rolls his eyes. “Oh God…”
“Hey, you are the one who introduced me to him, so now you have to
endure the consequences.” I know that’s the killing argument.
Alex sighs loudly. “And I’m already regretting it.”
I, on the other hand, smile radiantly.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 7
While I wanted to attend the concert alone with the girls, my dad has
imposed his own rules and I’ll have to go with my godfather instead. As a
“responsible adult,” he must pick me up and drop me off at home no later
than one thirty a.m. These are the non-negotiable conditions for me to be
able to go. Oh, Alexander’s just texted. He’s downstairs waiting for me,
punctual as always. I take one last look in the mirror before leaving. I’ve
opted for a white Balmain T-shirt, a black leather skirt, black sheer thigh-
high stockings, and a pair of heeled ankle boots—not my usual style, to say
the least. But hey, it’s not usual for me to attend a concert either.
Crossing the hallway of my building, I feel the doorman staring at me
discreetly. “Have a great evening, Ms. Van Gatt,” I hear as I walk outside.
Alex’s leaning against his car, just like last time. He looks young and
effortless in a smoky black Henley shirt with four buttons all closed, sleeves
rolled up to his elbows, a three-strand brown bracelet on his left wrist, and
light-gray jeans. Well, at least he doesn’t need Emma to know how to dress
for a concert.
“So, where is your date?” I tease.
His eyes dart in my direction, checking me out from top to bottom. I’m
expecting some sort of reaction, a compliment maybe, but nothing. “I saw
her yesterday so I could be free this evening. Shall we?” he asks, opening
my door.
“She’s too old to enjoy a pop concert?”
His eyes hold a glint of humor, playing with the corners of his mouth.
“Just in case you didn’t realize, little Petra, it’s a teen concert.”
The “teen” concert is playing at Terminal 5—a live music venue not too far
away. I can already see the streets full of people waiting to get in. Oh God.
My heartbeat quickens and my stomach knots. What if I have to be
squeezed in among the crowd? Today I took a pill to prevent a panic attack,
but even so, it’s hard not to freak out.
Alex notices it. “Don’t worry,” he reassures, smiling. “My brother
managed to get us a private box, there’ll be no one else.”
I heave a sigh of relief.
The box is on the third floor and looks directly onto the stage. It can
easily hold thirty people, but tonight we’re the only ones occupying it. We
find a low table with a bottle of champagne, two flutes, a leather sofa, and a
greeting card with a message inside: Hope you will enjoy. Xx, Jimmy.
I smile tenderly.
A security guard knocks on the door.
“Petra? Jimmy would like to see you before the concert starts. May I
escort you backstage?”
I glow with excitement. “Of course. I’m coming.”
But Alex reaches out and holds my wrist before I can do so. I raise an
eyebrow. “Be careful with him.”
Dear Lord! Just like his voice, his face is harsh, stern, serious...
Anyway, I couldn’t care less—Jimmy’s waiting for me.
The security escorts me backstage, where Jimmy and his musicians are
getting ready. I can hear the crowd outside screaming as their excitement
grows. Jeez! I’m glad to be in a private box upstairs. The area backstage is
quite dark, and with such a big crew moving around, it’s hard to find him. I
look a bit further and finally my face beams with joy, recognizing his
figure. Jimmy looks sexier than ever—dark ripped skinny jeans, ankle
boots, and a black V-neck T-shirt.
I jog over to where he’s standing and wrap my arms around his neck.
“Hi, Jimmy!”
“Hey!” he shouts, before kissing me passionately. His hands are finally
free to touch my hips. When I open my eyes again, I find him smiling at
me. “You look fucking hot,” he says bluntly.
My face goes red at his words. I glance briefly down, smiling, and tuck
some hair behind my ear. Looks like all those hours getting ready were
worth it. “Good luck at your concert.”
“You know,” he swallows hard, “I’ve been thinking about you since we
met…” Jimmy reaches down, takes my hand, and presses it firmly against
his boner—already arching hard into my palm. I gasp at the feel of him but
keep my hand still. “I’m so glad you came.”
I smile at him, but suddenly remember that I didn’t come alone, and my
smile turns into a loud rush of breath. “Yeah, well, I had to bring your
brother…”
He bursts into laughter. “We’ll manage to distract him at the party, don’t
worry.” He bends down slightly to my ear. “I want to be totally alone with
you,” he whispers.
I feel my heartbeat pounding faster at every word. “Me too,” I breathe,
before kissing him again.
“Look, after the concert, go straight to the Four Seasons and wait for me
in the lobby, alright?”
I nod.
“Jimmy, we’re ready to go!” informs one of the stage managers.
“I have to go. I hope you enjoy.”
“I’m sure I will.” I smooch him on his lips once more, our hands
entwined. When we reopen our eyes, I murmur a quick “Good luck” and
walk away. He takes a deep breath, staring at me until I reach the door and
exit.
On my way back to the box, all I can think about is him—his smile, his
touch, his lips, his kisses, his smell… ahhh. I let out a tender breath. After
my bad experience with James, I’m so happy to have met Jimmy, to be here
at his concert. My cheeks flush as I picture what we’ll be doing at the party
afterward. But my grin fades away at the sight of my godfather—he is still
here waiting for me. I roll my eyes. Why can’t he just go home? Maybe I
can persuade him to leave early.
“So, how was it?” he asks with amusement, looking at my sweaty pink
face.
With my mind still wandering, I let out a deep sigh. “Your brother is
sooo lovely.”
His eyes widen in surprise. “Yeah, right. I bet,” he sniggers, head
shaking, and looks again at the twinkle in my eye. “That’s so cute. Look at
you. My little goddaughter has a crush.”
“What’s so funny? Stop it!” I slap his stomach with the back of my
hand, hurting myself even more than I do him. I didn’t expect it to be that
hard—harder than Jimmy’s boner. I bite my lip to contain the pain, but my
grimace gives it away.
Alex starts laughing even harder. “Did my abs hurt you, little Petra?”
Fuck off! But I say, “Stop it!” and turn my back on him. I don’t want
him to notice how much I’m blushing, yet I can feel his amused gaze on
me. Fortunately, the lights turn off and an announcer greets the public.
Suspense grows as the stage fills with smoke and fog. The crowd loves it,
screaming and whistling for more. Finally, the first musicians emerge from
the darkness; everyone yells and claps. They start to play their instruments,
the beginning of the first song. Flashlights go on and off around the venue,
the noise deafening.
All of a sudden, Jimmy runs onto the stage, followed by white
projectors. He grasps his microphone, waits for the right chord, and starts
singing. I grin, proud to see him, my eyes sparkling. And just like the
crowd, I cheer, scream, and clap as hard as I can. Alex smiles too. But I’m
not sure if it’s because of his brother, or something else.
As we sit in the lobby area just beyond the opulent marble stairs, we realize
Jimmy and his crew are nowhere to be seen.
Alex notices how I’m becoming impatient, checking my iPhone every
two minutes, looking around, shaking my legs unsteadily.
“He’ll arrive drunk,” he announces bluntly.
“Why are you so tough on him? Maybe he went to pick up some
friends.” Or at least that’s what I hope.
“I know him, that’s all.” He pauses. “Look, if we lose each other at the
party, give me a call, and I’ll find you.” And what if I don’t want to be
found? “I know the suite. I brought him here once for his birthday.” There’s
a beat of silence. “And don’t leave without me,” he snaps, so sternly that I
swallow hard.
“What about you? What if you find some gorgeous supermodel?”
His face softens with a suppressed laugh. “I’m taking care of you
tonight. I won’t leave the party with anyone but you.”
I can’t help but smile and decide to satisfy my usual curiosity. “You
know, for a second I thought Jimmy was your son…”
“Really? C’mon, he’s twenty-two.”
Well, why not? Could’ve been. “Yeah, I mean, before you introduced me
to him.” He shakes his head in amusement but doesn’t open up further. “Do
you have kids?” I finally ask.
“Me? Of course not,” he utters immediately, almost in outrage.
“How can you be so sure?” I insist. “After all, accidents do happen.”
“Um, because…” I feel him hesitate. A shy smile settles on his lips, but
he breaks eye contact and stares down at the marble floor. And just like
when we were in the private box, I know this type of talk makes him
uncomfortable.
“Alex.” His eyes meet mine again for a moment. “I’m not a kid
anymore, it’s alright,” I remind him once more, just before giggling like
one.
“Okay. Fine,” he spits out. I wait patiently for the rest of his answer, my
eyes pinned on him. “I always use condoms.”
“Really? Like, always always?”
“Yes, always always,” he repeats. “I’ve never done it without using
one.”
“Wow. What about with Amanda?”
“Damn, you’re so curious. Dear Lord.” He glances around, probably
impatient for Jimmy to step in and save him. Not a good excuse, Mr. Van
Dieren. I keep staring despite his loud sigh. “Even with Amanda,” he
mutters.
“Any reason in particular?” I know at this point I’m being super pushy,
but I can’t help it—curiosity is my nickname!
He doesn’t reply, but my eyes are glued to his mouth, waiting for his
next words. He presses his lips together, finally looking me in the eye, and
knowing there’s no escape, he says, “I just don’t trust women when it
comes to birth control, little Petra.”
I hear loud laughter breaking out in the hotel. I follow it with my eyes
and see Jimmy and his musicians surrounded by a horde of girls. They
flurry in our direction with hearty giggles, swaying and singing with half-
empty whiskey bottles in their hands.
To say the least, I’m not pleased. “Have you been drinking already?”
“Just a bit backstage with my boys. Let’s go celebrate!” Everyone
cheers, excited to go upstairs. He smooches my lips quickly, but long
enough for me to catch a blast of Jack Daniel’s. Alex rolls his eyes, looking
away. “Bro! How are you?” greets Jimmy. “Can’t believe you came! So, did
you enjoy my songs?”
“Very much.”
“You lie so badly! They are too cheap for you, huh? You know, Petra,
my bro thinks he’s some sort of aristocratic playboy.” He bursts into
laughter, but no one else does. “Alex, the aristocratic playboy.” I shake my
head. Jimmy’s just embarrassing himself right in the middle of the lobby.
“C’mon, let’s go.” I grab his hand and drag him into the elevator. We go
to the Fifty-First floor. Once we arrive in front of his suite, he taps his
keycard on the reader and opens the door into a gigantic living room. The
atmosphere is dark and playful, with way too many people already inside,
from friends and acquaintances to models and crew members. Everyone’s
already partying, drinking and dancing to the DJ. They raise their glasses
and cheer at the sight of him. Jimmy does some quick dance moves and
dives into the crowd for a cheering, kissing, and hugging crusade.
I’m frightened. I hate this kind of party more than anything else. But I
take a deep breath and step in. Oh! I see at terrace in the distance. “Let’s go
outside!” And I drag Alex with me.
The party is a raging success. Everyone seems to be having fun. Alex and I
are standing on the terrace, enjoying the fresh breeze, the softer music, and
talking to three gorgeous blonde models, or wait… maybe that’s just Alex.
Indeed, I feel totally left out. I decide to look around for Jimmy, but he’s
neither on the terrace, nor in the living room.
Suddenly, I receive a text message: Are you free?
It’s from him. Finally!
Yep, where are you? I reply.
You’ll see a waiter standing in front of my room. Tell him your name,
and he’ll let you in.
I leave the living room, walk down the hallway, and see a young man in
a white suit with a bow tie standing in front of a door. Must be him.
“Hi, I’m Petra Van Gatt.”
He nods and lets me in.
The bedroom is empty. I don’t see anyone. But I do hear water falling
from the en suite bathroom. Is he in the shower? I don’t want to disturb him.
“Hey, how are you? I’m sorry, I really needed a shower.” Jimmy walks
into the room with a white towel wrapped around his hips.
I cover my eyes immediately and turn around. “Oh, I’m sorry. I didn’t
know… Please take your time.”
“Do you mind if I wear only boxers?”
What? I gasp instantly. I’ve never seen anyone in boxers! Even James
had only taken his shirt off. “Would you mind wearing some jeans too?” I
dare to ask.
“Alright, then…”
I can hear him walking toward the closet. I sit on the edge of his bed
and wait.
“You can look now.” I dare to do so and see he’s at least half dressed.
His body’s dry and fit, but strangely, not enough for my taste. Don’t ask me
why, but I’ve always had a penchant for athletic and lean guys. “I’m sorry,
it’s just I… I’m not used to seeing guys in boxers…”
He sits beside me. “No worries.”
I smile timidly at him in a failed attempt to cover the palpable tension.
Jimmy starts to caress my jawline, tucks some hair behind my ear, and
kisses my lips before laying me down, his body slightly inclined on mine.
My pulse pounds nervously faster and faster with every kiss. He nibbles my
bottom lip, then my chin, going further down to my neck, smooching it
hurriedly between panting breaths. His hands slide under my T-shirt, trying
briefly to take it off, but he probably senses that I’m uncomfortable and
stops.
“Do you want some?” he asks, reaching for a tray with white powder
lines from the nightstand.
Why does everyone do cocaine? God! “No, thank you.” I smile, shaking
my head.
Despite the shower, he still looks quite unsteady, maybe half drunk. He
takes a rolled up dollar bill and sniffs a line. “You should. It’s great to relax.
Not even a tiny bit? Just to try.”
I decline again.
Jimmy puts the tray on the nightstand and then reaches again for me,
devouring my mouth. Hungry for more, he discreetly pulls my skirt up, and
I feel his fingers fondling my inner thigh. I shiver at his touch and I
instinctively stop him from getting closer to my crotch. “I’m sorry, I’m—”
“I know,” he cuts me off with a sly smile. “You’ve never done it, right?”
I frown at the question. Is it written on my face or what? “And how do
you know that?” I ask, confused.
“I felt it,” he replies plainly.
I narrow my eyes, Alex’s voice suddenly resonating in my mind. I don’t
think he cares about you, but rather about what you are. Did he mean a
virgin? Jimmy’s about to reach my lips, but I’ve got more to say. “Is this the
reason why you brought me here?”
“Well…what would it be for, then?” He mocks bluntly, sniggering at my
face.
Disgusted by his attitude, I slap him. “You’re really a fucking bastard!
Alex was right.” I try to stand up, but his body weight is on top of me. "Get
off!”
He grabs me by the neck, holding me down. “Who do you think you
are, bitch? I deserve to take this pussy. I dedicated a fucking song to you!”
“Get away from me,” I scream, my arms pushing him back.
“Shhh!” He covers my mouth with his palm. “Scream once more, and
you’ll see. Now…” he starts to unfasten his belt and unzip his jeans,
pushing them down.
I gasp, seeing his boner behind his boxers. I’m frightened, my heartbeat
keeps thundering. I glance around for my iPhone—it’s inside my purse on
the other side of the bed, although not too far from my reach.
“Time to take what is mine.”
I try to move my hand to discreetly reach it, but he grabs my wrists and
devours my mouth violently so I can’t scream any further. Fuck! I’ve got to
call Alex. I bite Jimmy’s tongue so hard that he releases me instantly.
“Alex!” I scream as loud as I can. But the music is loud, too loud.
“Such a bitch! You fucking bit my tongue!” He slaps me back.
I yell in pain but manage to grab my iPhone.
“Put the phone down!”
I press the call button, but he throws the phone on the floor and pulls me
back to the center of the bed. As I try to move, he lays his entire body on
top of me—it’s getting hard to even breathe! He pinches my lips. “Now you
shut the fuck up. Are we clear?”
He slips the other hand down between my thighs. I feel his sweaty
fingers reaching my panties. I scream again, with tears of rage rolling down
my face and my legs trembling. He kisses my mouth so viciously that I feel
like I’m suffocating. I want to throw up in disgust, but he inserts his
repugnant tongue in my mouth to lick mine. Then I start sobbing. Tired of
having my arms flailing around him, he holds my skinny wrists tight behind
the pillow with one single hand. I’m paralyzed by his torso; my entire body
quivers. I close my eyes, shaking my head repeatedly in an attempt to free
his repulsive mouth from mine. But the more I try to fight, the more I feel
him crushing my chest, his tongue wriggling inside my mouth and his
arousal growing. Oh God. I just want to die at this precise moment, instead
of having to feel his disgusting fingers near my crotch, pressing into me.
I hear glass break against something.
His fingers stop, his entire body becomes motionless—Jimmy falls over
me, unconscious. I’m able to make out Alex standing behind him, pulling
his brother’s body away from me.
I can finally breathe again. My face grows red as I think about what
could’ve happened.
But my attention shifts back to Alex, who sits beside me. Wow. His eyes
are even more frightened and full of hatred than mine, his heartbeat even
louder. “It’s alright, Petra. I’m here,” he murmurs.
A wave of emotion consumes me, and at the sound of his voice, I hug
him instantly, sobbing against his chest. “Oh God,” I howl. “I feel so
terrible.” He holds me firmly in his arms, kissing the top of my head while
caressing the long strands of my hair to comfort me. “You were so right—”
“Shh… I’m here. It’s over.” He looks into my eyes and dries some tears
with his thumbs. “It’s over,” he repeats in a whisper, holding my jaw. “Did
he hurt you? Definitely on the right cheek, you are so red.”
“He slapped me,” I confess, looking down, ashamed.
“Hey.” He brings my chin up. “This bastard will never touch you again.
We will report him to the police now.”
“No! Don’t go to the police. It’ll only bring trouble to all of us, and Dad
will know about it.”
“Petra, have you seen what he did to you? This monster should never
walk the streets ever again.”
“Don’t go to the police, please,” I insist. “It’s your brother. He was
under the influence of alcohol and cocaine. I’m sure he’ll regret it as soon
as he wakes up.”
“That’s totally irrelevant. His behavior was absolutely inexcusable. We
should report him.”
“I don’t want to. It won’t wash away what he did. No one needs to
know about this. Dad will be so disappointed in both of us.” He frowns in
confusion at my answer. “In me, because I went to his bedroom, and in you
because... well... technically you allowed me to,” I explain.
He sighs loudly, but no one is up for any more debate. “We’ll discuss it
later. Now, let’s go home.” He kisses my forehead softly one last time,
holds me by the hand, and we finally leave.
I’ve never felt so scared and abused in my entire life. How did Jimmy have
the guts to do something like that? Was it only because he was under
alcohol and cocaine, as I said? Or was it a premeditated act? I shudder at
the thought of him. I stare at my godfather instead. He’s driving, focused on
the road, but visibly angry. I want to thank him, but his glare is so enraged,
so full of fury. I wonder what he’s thinking.
“I’m truly sorry for his behavior, Petra.” He punches the steering wheel
in anger. “Damn it! Such a fucking asshole. I can’t believe it.”
“It’s alright… I’m fine now,” I reply, to cool him down. “Thank you for
being there for me.”
He gives me a tender smile and lays his right hand on top of mine, while
holding the steering wheel with the other.
His eyes are laser focused on the road, but his thumb starts caressing my
fingers. I can’t help but smile at the feel of his touch. He brings my hand to
his lips, yet his eyes remain forward, attentive and serious. I watch him
placing subtle kisses on my knuckles. They are protective, appeasing, and
warm. In fact, I realize he has never kissed me on the cheek, not even once,
since we’ve only greeted each other verbally. I wonder why and, for an
instant, how it would feel to rest my lips on his face.
He looks back at me.
“No one will ever hurt you again, Petra. I give you my word.”
The sound of his voice curls my lips into a pleasant smile. It feels so
reassuring. And, strange or not, I have the feeling he truly means it.
“Dad gave me until one thirty a.m… Maybe we could go somewhere
else before going straight home?”
“Petra, I promised your father I’d take you to the concert and the party.
That’s it. No bars or clubs. Plus, with what happened, you need to rest.”
“I wasn’t thinking about any bar or club. Maybe we could go to your
place for some tea? You told me you were renting a condo nearby, right?”
I hear only silence. His face reveals nothing as he glances at his watch.
“Fine. I guess we have time for a quick tea and to put some soothing
ointment on that cheek. But then, home.” I smile, victorious, despite his
stern voice.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 8
I hand her a cup while trying to prevent my rage and anger from consuming
me. Yet, the urge to beat the hell out of my brother is all I can think about.
Damn it. What a fucking bastard—he knew perfectly that Petra was my
goddaughter and how much I cared about her. Before I can dwell further, I
take a deep breath and sit in front of her. “Are you feeling better?”
“Yeah… thanks,” she confirms, stirring her tea.
But Petra seems distant, lost in her own thoughts. I bring my chair
closer to hers. I can’t help noticing the red mark on her cheek. Fuck, he
must’ve slapped her quite hard. That bastard is going to regret it. I’ll take
care of him later.
“What’s going on, Petra? Is it because of him? That guy is a total
bastard. Don’t even think about him anymore. I should’ve never introduced
you to him. I’m so sorry. I never thought—”
“No, it’s not that…” she cuts me off. “It’s just…” Petra sighs, looking
absently at her tea. “Every time I’m interested in someone, I get deceived.”
“You mean you already met guys like him?”
“Once. And that’s my entire romantic life.”
“So you had a boyfriend before?” I ask, my tone coming out more
worried than I expected.
She giggles. “No. He was just a crush from high school, and I saw him
at Emma’s party. He was so cute and nice. But anyway…”
“What happened then?” Yep, now it’s my turn to be curious, Ms. Van
Gatt.
“Hey, are you gonna tell Dad?”
“Well, I’m already hiding from him your little trip to jail, so I bet I can
hide one more thing.”
She studies my face for a moment with narrowed eyes and pressed lips.
“Okay, fine. His name is James, and we were together in a bedroom when
—”
“Wait. In a bedroom? You mean… doing it?” I have to ask.
Her jaw drops at my question. “Of course not,” she replies, nearly
outraged. “I’m not like that.”
I raise an eyebrow suspiciously. “Not like what?”
She breaks eye contact instead, her cheeks flushing as she looks down at
her tea. “You’ll make fun of me if I tell you...”
I escape a wry smile, intrigued. “Try me.”
But the Miss doesn’t open up further.
I put my hand on hers, searching for her gaze. When she finally meets
mine again, I add, “I’ll never make fun of you, Petra. You can trust me.”
We keep quiet as we stare into each other’s eyes.
“I...” she mumbles.
Nothing but silence remains.
“I just want to do it with the right one… Like in books, when they truly
love each other... It’s stupid, I know. Call me old-fashioned,” she teases
with an ounce of embarrassment, her eyes darting down again.
“Petra.”
She instantly looks back at me.
“I think it’s very wise and noble. I’m sure one day you’ll find someone
who will love you that way.”
Her face softens with a corner smile, and I find myself returning it.
“So,” she proceeds, “James and I were kissing on the bed when Emma
stepped in, telling me she caught one of his friends recording us. They
wanted to use the video to blackmail us for money.”
“Wow. Disgusting.”
“Indeed. I thought he had morals and standards despite his humble
background, but I got it wrong.” She lets out a sigh. “And when I met
Jimmy, I kind of trusted him because he was your brother… Anyway, I
should’ve listened to you.”
I hold her hand tight. “I’m truly sorry for this, Petra. I should’ve never
brought you to that stupid party in the first place.”
She smiles broadly at me, interlocking our fingers. “It’s not your fault,”
she reassures with a warm voice, but I can’t help feeling it is. “I’m the one
who met him in his bedroom while you were distracted.”
“Alright, enough about bedrooms.” I leap out of my seat. “You deserve
a mojito… Virgin mojito,” I tease.
She folds her arms across her chest. “Ha ha. Very funny, Mr. Van
Dieren.”
I go to the bar area in my living room to prepare the promised cocktail.
Meanwhile, Ms. Curiosity can’t stay still and decides to stroll around my
entire apartment. The condo I’m renting is quite spacious, with a modern
design, minimal furniture, and a big terrace for dinners outside. Just enough
for my usual booty calls. Petra goes a bit further down the hallway, curious
(as always) to explore. I can’t help but shake my head.
With her cocktail in hand, I find her inspecting a framed contemporary
abstract oil painting on the wall. She doesn’t recognize the artist. I stand
beside her, glance at the artwork, and say, “Your mom painted it.” She gasps
in surprise. “Tess gave it to me when I became your godfather. You were
maybe seven months old.” A smile settles on my lips recalling such
memories, and I give her the mojito. “It was a real honor when Roy asked
me to be your godfather.” But as I recall what I’ve done, I lower my gaze
and my smile fades away.
I hear her swallowing hard.
After a silent minute, my eyes meet hers again. “I owe you an apology,”
I declare. “I’m sorry to have been absent for so long, Petra.” I feel a deep
pain in my chest simply at the thought of it. “Now that I’m back, I promise
I’ll make up for it.”
She takes a sip, and her face beams with a cute little smile. “I must say,
I couldn’t have dreamt of a better godfather,” she replies in a low, tender
voice.
“Thank you,” I murmur.
Her grin gets wider. “The mojito tastes great, by the way.”
The corners of my mouth instantly curve up at her words. She opens her
arms and gives me an unexpected hug. With her head resting on my
shoulder, I stroke her long, wavy hair—I love the jasmine smell of it—and
briefly close my eyes, treasuring this moment. It reminds me of the hugs
she used to give me ten years ago. They always feel the same to me,
profound and genuinely warm.
After she releases me, I reach down and give her small hand a kiss. Her
lips spread apart as she observes mine touching her skin. But to my
surprise, my kiss is slower, tender, and deeper than usual. It’s probably only
a millisecond longer, and yet I felt the difference. “Well, it’s getting late,” I
say, glancing at my watch. “It’s already one o’clock.”
“I see…” She looks around, probably trying to find a viable excuse to
stay longer. “I’m hungry. Do you have something to eat?” And she trots
toward the kitchen.
I shake my head in amusement. I know her so well. “I don’t eat much
here. Maybe some toast and yogurt,” I reply.
“I can cook something for us.”
“Petra, yogurt or home, now.”
“Okay, fine. What kind of yogurt do you have?”
“I don’t know, but I think Maria brought some.”
“Maria? Your new girlfriend?”
“The maid, Petra.”
She opens the fridge. “Hmm, looks like Maria loves raspberry yogurt.
You want one?”
“I’m good, thank you.”
Leaning against the doorframe, my arms folded across my chest, I let
my eyes dwell on her for a moment. A hint of a smile plays on my lips.
Petra can’t help but look exactly her age despite her heavy makeup, her
black hair, her leather skirt, her choker necklace—all useless
embellishments to my eye. She’s so beautiful without all this rubbish.
Natural, angelic, pure… Why on earth would she put all that makeup on?
Her skin is already spotless. I can’t help but chuckle: here she is, standing in
my kitchen acting like a little girl, her eyes closed as she eats—or devours
—a raspberry yogurt. “Mmmm...” I laugh, hearing her voice. Does she
know how cute she is? “This is really good,” she says while I remain
looking steadily at her, quite entertained. “Can I ask you something?”
But I blink at her question, straighten my posture, and clear my throat.
“Sure.”
“Why did you disappear for ten years?”
My heart skips a beat. I didn’t see it coming. “Your dad told you. I
moved back to Amsterdam for work.”
“But you didn’t even call…”
“Petra, you were seven,” I snap.
“So what? You think kids don’t have feelings? I considered you my best
friend. I trusted you.”
“I’m sorry. I didn’t think you’d even remember me afterward.”
“I don’t believe you.” Her voice comes out loaded with sorrow. “Why
did you abandon me? Why didn't you ever call? Or ever attend any of my
birthdays? I know you came to New York on many occasions. Why didn’t
you ever want to see me? I… I missed you, for God’s sake!” Her pain is so
palpable that it stabs my chest. She sighs heavily, crossing her arms, and
turns her face away.
“Petra.” I move in her direction, trying to reach for her, but she takes a
step back. Nevertheless, I pinch her chin and keep it up, forcing her gaze to
meet mine again. “First, I missed you just as much, if not more. And
second, ask your dad—he’ll tell you why. But believe me, it was in your
best interest.” I find myself a bit lost in the infinite blue of her eyes; they
look like two big, bright sapphires staring back at a flawed human… Okay,
enough. I break eye contact, checking my watch. “Time to go, Ms. Van
Gatt.”
“I can call Anthony, Dad’s driver. Don’t bother,” she snarls, her arms
still folded.
“I told your father I would drive you home.”
“And? You always do what you say?”
“For the Van Gatts, yes.”
I wake up with a huge headache and someone pressing his finger nonstop
on the doorbell. Goddammit! Make it stop! I try hard to stand up and stay
steady on my feet. Fuck, I can barely see with so much darkness. I drag
myself to the hallway of my suite and open the door. Mercifully, it’s Alex...
with another man I don’t recognize.
“Oh, bro! You have no—”
Alex grabs my neck so hard I can barely breathe. He and his friend
make their way in, closing the door behind them.
“How are you, Jimmy?” he asks, his fingers tightening on my neck.
I nearly faint from the lack of oxygen. WTF is wrong with him? My
mouth remains wide open as I try to drag some precious air into my lungs.
Since I can’t even talk, he releases me. And when I finally take a breath, he
punches me in the face with so much strength that I fall down. “Fuck!”
Finding my nose bleeding, I scream in pain. “Goddammit! Stop!”
But he grabs my T-shirt in rage and lifts me off the ground, his face
deadly threatening. “Wasn’t that what Petra told you when you tried to rape
her?” Another punch. This time in my stomach. That’s it—I throw up my
entire night on the floor. “Argh! Disgusting!” Alex takes a step back,
avoiding the vomit.
My body is exhausted. Shaking, I collapse on the carpet behind me. “I
don’t know! Leave me alone!” I keep sobbing, my face scarlet and with
tears streaming down. Jeez, I feel my head’s about to explode.
“You’re so damn lucky she’s not gonna report you. Now get up. We’ve
got paperwork for you.”
He’s insane! I can barely stand on my feet, my nose is bleeding, I’ve got
a terrible headache, but he expects me to read and sign papers?
Since I’m not obeying, Alex grabs me by the neck again, dragging me
like I’m some sort of trash bag to the dining area of the suite. There he
forces me to sit on a chair.
Fucking asshole.
“You’ll delete her phone number. And never ever try to get in touch
with her again. Are we clear?”
I nod, swallowing the rest of the vomit stuck in my throat.
His friend takes a stack of papers from his briefcase and puts them in
front of me. It looks like a contract.
Alex takes a seat beside me and hands me a pen. “Since you are no
longer fit to be part of this family, you’ll renounce our father’s name and his
heritage. You’ll change your name to Jimmy Visser.” That’s my mother’s
last name. WTF? “You’ll also renounce your right to his nobility title and to
his inheritance.”
Pfff, I might be half dead but I’m not dumb. Renouncing my father’s
title and his fortune? Yeah, right... “And what if I don’t accept?” I dare to
ask.
He gives me a side smile that’s enough to scare the hell out of me. “I
don’t think you have a choice.” He pauses. “Unless you consider death an
option.”
My jaw drops in horror. This man has nothing but evil in his eyes.
Terrified by his threat, I remain still and quiet in my chair. After all, I’ve
heard some rumors about my brother and his family when dealing with
enemies—or anyone they deem threatening—but, damn, would he be
capable of going that far?
“Would you go as far as killing your own brother?”
“I no longer have a brother, Jimmy. To me, you are dead,” he announces
so stoically that I shiver. “Now, if you want us to handle this as
diplomatically as possible, kindly sign the agreement.”
At that instant, I want to throw up what is left of me on the table. But
instead, I swallow my fear, reach for the pen, and sign the fucking contract.
“Here. All signed. I’m no longer part of your stupid and crazy family. Now,
can you leave me alone?”
His friend, probably a lawyer or something, takes the contract, verifies
my signature, and nods to Alex.
“I have no intention of staying any longer,” he adds, standing up.
“Goodbye, Jimmy.”
I sit in the shower, my legs bent to my chest, letting the water fall over my
hair and body. It feels like déjà vu. I had the same disgusting taste in my
mouth following Emma’s farewell party. I put my head down and let myself
cry for a brief moment. What a useless waste of time and money spent on
this bastard. My overpriced clothes are lying on the floor. I wash off my
makeup, feeling angry, deceived, and furious, but mainly with myself. I
should’ve seen this coming. Damn, Petra. Even my godfather warned me.
Pfff, what a dumbass I was to think Jimmy liked me. It’s time to stop
listening to my stupid hormones, which are just landing me in dangerous
situations. From now on, I’ll follow Dad’s advice—no more boys for me.
I’ll remain focused on my internship and my studies at Columbia.
After getting out of the shower, I observe my naked figure in the mirror.
Pale, fragile, too skinny, curveless are just some of the words that come to
mind. I can see my collarbone sticking out. My cheek is still marked, but
thankfully I’m not bruised. There’s one thing I particularly like about my
body though: my breasts. They are small, but fully circular, round, and firm.
My areolas are not big either, and they’re of a warm pink that perfectly
matches my fair tone. My nipples are pointing outwards. I’ve realized that
they become harder and more pronounced with fear. I take my jasmine
moisturizer and rub some on my neck, my shoulders, my arms, and the rest
of my body. Afterward, I put on my white cotton pajamas and go to my
bedroom, plunging inside my fluffy, warm bed. Ha! There is no place like
home.
That Sunday, Janine is not here to wake me up, but the sunlight is strong
enough to pierce through the curtains and cast light across the room. I open
my eyes gently—the light is so bright. No wonder. The clock screams
eleven thirty a.m. I gasp. It’s so late. I leap out of bed, take my clothes from
the floor, and put them back in the bag. I will ask Janine to wash them and
give them to a shelter tomorrow. I never want to see them again.
Speaking of tomorrow, it’s Monday tomorrow. My first day as an intern.
Oh God! I trot to the kitchen to prepare some tea.
“Good morning, Petra.”
What is he doing here? “Hey, good morning, Dad. What are you doing
here? It’s not usual for you to be in the kitchen. Are you feeling alright?”
“Well, it’s not usual for you to go to a concert either. I just wanted to
know how your evening was.”
My heart begins thundering nervously. I put the water on to boil. I swear
if Alex told him anything, I’ll never talk to him ever again. Dad’s drinking
his usual espresso, the journal closed on the table. “Indeed. It was fun,” I
say while choosing my tea for this morning. “Do we have more matcha?”
“I don’t know, since I don’t drink tea. Just fun? That’s all?”
“Yep. That’s all. Ah, I found it.”
“Petra, I only want your happiness and your well-being, you know
that,” he starts. “If there is anything you want to tell me, or ask me, I won’t
get mad or angry…”
Is that some sort of hint? Does he know about last night? Did Alex tell
him? Of course he did! They are best friends. It’s obvious he would report
the incident to him. I take a deep breath, trying to control my nerves, and
pour the boiled water in my mug. “I know.”
I hear only silence. He’s probably expecting me to open a bit more, but
nope. Sorry, Dad, not happening.
“You like Jimmy, don’t you?” My eyes widen in shock. That’s all he
knows? I turn back to face him. He looks thoughtful, lost. I can’t stop
giggling. “Why are you laughing like that? It’s alright. You don’t need to
feel embarrassed. You are not a child anymore.”
“Dad, please stop,” I say, still laughing. “This talk doesn’t fit you at all.”
I try to calm myself down. “I have no feelings whatsoever toward Jimmy.
Nope. Just forget him, okay? And as you said before, boys are a stupid and
useless distraction. I’m focused and looking forward to my internship. It
starts tomorrow, remember?”
He smiles proudly, maybe also in relief. “Of course I remember. So, are
you still sure about hiding your identity?”
“I am. I’ll be Petra Williams, as we agreed. I want the managers to
assess me fairly.”
“As you wish. Well, don’t forget to be at the office at nine o’clock
sharp. Andrew will greet the new interns.”
“Yes, Dad. I’ll be there at nine on the dot.”
He stands up, moves toward me, and gives me a hug. “I’m proud of
you, Petra, so proud,” he adds before kissing my forehead. “Your godfather
told me about the fund he opened for you to invest in emerging artists. I’m
sorry I didn’t support you before. He’s a better listener than I.”
My face beams with joy. “It’s alright. I’m happy you like the idea.”
Then I promptly ask, "By the way, may I invite Emma over for lunch?”
Dad smiles back, glancing at his watch. “Sure. I have to go, actually. I
have lunch in Greenwich. See you later.” And he gives me a quick kiss on
the cheek before heading out.
“Bye, Dad. Enjoy.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 9
Monday comes sooner than I expected. It feels like the most stressful days
always come faster than those I look forward to. Janine’s in my bedroom
promptly at seven o’clock, but this morning I didn’t need her help to wake
me up. My eyes were wide open a long time ago. Anxiety is the one to
blame. I take a deep breath and leap out of bed, running to the shower. I
know I’ll be the youngest of the interns, but as my father said, that’s no
reason for me not to become the best among them. After showering, I
decide to wear a white shirt, navy blazer, dark skinny jeans, and my usual
beige flats, which match perfectly with anything. I wonder if I should tie up
my hair. I think so, so I do a presentable ponytail.
A different driver is waiting outside. He drives me down to the office
near the One World Trade Center. Traffic is pretty intense this morning.
I walk into the building—it’s one of those glittering skyscrapers made
of marble and glass reflecting the sunlight that beams and bounces off the
walls. It feels chilly. A receptionist is sitting behind a large counter, handing
out cards to people as they arrive. “Good morning. You are?”
“Hi. I’m Petra V…Williams. Petra Williams. I’m one of the new interns
at Gatt-Dieren Capital.”
“Very well. Do you have an ID?”
“Here.” I hand him my new fake ID. Very authentic. Emma knows a
Cuban somewhere near Tribeca who makes the best ones in town.
“Thank you, Ms. Williams. Here is your card for the elevator, just on
your right. Floor fifty-seven.”
Williams. This is how Andrew will treat me from now on. Everyone has
received friendly nicknames but me. There’s Joe for Joseph, Rob for
Robert, Rach for Rachel, John for Johnny, but I got Williams. This is not
the start I expected, to say the least.
“What are you working on?” Andrew asks, stopping by my desk.
His tone is sharp as a knife and irritating, but I decide to answer
politely. “I’m gathering data on emerging artists in contemporary art and
comparing their performance to similar ones.”
“Artists?” He frowns. “Right… Not sure if you know, Williams, but
you’re on my team. And my team is researching oil, not artists. So you
better stop what you’re doing and get focused on energy markets.”
“I’m sorry? I thought it was written somewhere that I’d be covering
emerging artists.”
“Williams, you are so funny.” He snickers. “We don’t have any fund
that covers emerging artists. But that’s a great idea. I’ll suggest it to the
management. Until then, oil.”
I’m confused. I can’t figure out why Alex or Dad didn’t warn Andrew
that I’ve got a fund to invest on my own. I decide to text my godfather
discreetly. Hi, Andrew’s asking me to spend time on oil research… You
didn’t tell him I got my own fund?
I wait a bit.
Finally, I see Alex typing. I smile. No, Andrew doesn’t know who you
are. You must convince him you want to have a fund.
But my smile vanishes just as fast. What? Since he doesn’t know who I
am, he’ll never support me!
Tell him you want to invest in emerging artists, get him on your side,
and then tell him you’d like to pitch your idea to the management, he
instantly replies.
And what if he doesn’t let me talk to the management?
You wanted to play by the rules, right? Then play by them. Good luck.
I cringe. Andrew’s a douchebag. I can feel it. With no sensibility or
appreciation whatsoever for art, I’ll have to convince him with numbers and
potential returns.
I leave my desk, my research folded under my arm, and look around for
him.
Ah, here he is! I find him standing with colleagues next to the coffee
machine.
I take a deep breath, clear my throat, and poke him. “Andrew? I’m sorry
to bother you, but do you have a minute?”
“What’s up?”
“I think you should check the research I’ve done about potential returns
in the art sector.” I hand him the sheet with stats and returns. “Some artists
even achieved fifteen hundred percent growth in less than eighteen months.
This one, for instance, started selling his paintings at one thousand dollars,
and one year later, some of his artwork was valued at fifteen thousand
dollars. With all the exhibitions he’s doing worldwide, he could achieve at
least one hundred thousand dollars per piece within three to four years,
based on the performance of similar artists.”
“I’m hungry. You want to talk about this over lunch?”
He paid attention. That’s amazing! “Yes, sure. Let’s grab lunch.”
We go to a small bistro just across the street. “They make amazing pasta,”
he guarantees as we sit, and before I can say anything, he orders for both of
us.
I hand my research to Andrew, who scans the pages attentively, asking
questions as he goes.
“Alright, Williams, convincing numbers. What do you want from me?”
“I’d like to pitch a fund for emerging artists to the management.”
He bursts into laughter, shaking his head. “Yeah, right…” But I remain
serious. I’m not kidding, dumbass. He clears his throat and straightens his
posture. “It’s a little early, Williams. You’ve just arrived.” I look
suspiciously at him until he glances again at my file, more precisely at the
financial forecast. “Who exactly do you think would be interested in your
idea?” He takes a sip from his glass.
“Alexander Van Dieren.”
But he nearly chokes on it. “The CEO? Wow, you aim high. Look, he’s
quite busy, you know. I’m not sure if he has time for that.”
“I’m sure he has time to test some new revenue lines.”
“This is a super-risky type of fund. I don’t know if he would be
interested,” he insists.
“I saw you invest in emerging markets. Why not emerging artists?”
Andrew sighs. “Alright, look,” he starts. “I admire folks who have the
guts to pitch new ideas, but getting a fund as an intern is nearly impossible.
And even if by some sort of divine intervention you manage to convince
Van Dieren to open a fund for emerging artists, you’ll need someone to
supervise it, and you being on my team, this someone would be me…” He
smirks. “Therefore, I would want a commission.”
“Well, I imagine if the fund profits are for Gatt-Dieren Capital, then I’m
probably entitled to a percentage, and you too.”
“Right. But just to make it clear—I want a percentage on your
percentages.”
“What? That’s not fair.”
“The world isn’t fair, darling. You’ll need my help for the intro and the
pitch.”
What about telling you he is my godfather, idiot? No, cool down, Petra.
You wanted to play by the rules; you play by the rules. “You know, I’m just
looking for a small fund to start, two hundred and fifty thousand as a test. I
might leave the company after this internship, but you can easily replace me
with someone and continue to grow the fund and make further returns. So,
in the long-term, you’ve already won.”
“Alright, alright…” He mumbles, staring at the beautiful waitress as she
places our lunch on the table. Right, he probably didn’t hear a thing.
We start eating.
Ugh. This meeting is going nowhere. I have to try harder. “When are
you calling Van Dieren?”
“You mean, you want me to call him now?” he garbles while chewing.
“Of course. I want to pitch the fund as soon as possible. I thought you
were a hustler.”
And Andrew is one. He takes the bait, picks up his phone, and finally
calls Van Dieren’s office.
“Hi, Cate. It’s Andrew Sullivan. Is Mr. Van Dieren available this
afternoon? I’d like to talk to him… Just ten minutes would be enough… It’s
about opening a new fund… Alternative investments… Perfect. After lunch
is fine.” He hangs up. “After lunch I can talk to him for ten minutes. See?
I’m a real hustler. That’s why I make seven figures a year.”
I roll my eyes. Such a pathetic ego. So easy to manipulate.
Phew! I’ve been working tirelessly the entire afternoon; hours feel just like
minutes. The artists—
“Petra?”
“God! You scared me.”
“It’s eight p.m. Everyone already left. What are you still doing here?”
scolds Alex, standing before me.
He has finally removed his tie and opened his collar. Oh dear. My
mouth goes dry looking at him, and I try hard not to gape. I wonder where
is he heading next. To a dinner? A bar? Some exciting event? Maybe we
could go together…
Get a grip, Petra! I look back at my screen and click print. “I was just
finishing. When can I present you with my investment plan?”
“You already have one?”
“Yep,” I reply, collecting a thick stack of pages from the printer.
“Alright, pass by my office tomorrow, then. Now, let me call Anthony
to take you home.”
I roll my eyes. “I can book an Uber.”
“I want to make sure you get home safely.”
“Ubers are safe.”
Nevertheless, Alex keeps holding his iPhone to his ear. “I know that, but
not enough for my taste.”
“Pfff, you’re as controlling as Dad. Unbelievable.”
He walks a few steps in my direction. Standing in front of him, I can’t
help but inhale his perfume. It’s so unique—sophisticated and old-school,
yet daring and audacious. I wonder if he created it himself.
“Hi, Anthony. Ms. Van Gatt is ready to go home. Kindly pick her up at
the headquarters. Thank you. Bye.” And he hangs up. “Anthony is gonna be
here in five minutes.”
I let out a sigh, displeased. After all, while I’ll be heading to an empty
home, my godfather will most likely be going to a very exciting place.
“And you? Where are you going?”
“Always so damn curious, huh?” he teases, shaking his head in
amusement. “I’ve got a dinner to go to.”
Of course you do. And I’ll be dining alone with my books. I nod
pensively, trying to hide my disappointment. “Well, enjoy your dinner,” I
reply, making my way toward the elevators.
But he reaches for my hand before I can do so. “Petra.”
“Yes?” I try hard not to blush as I look at him in the eye. He lets a
corner smile escape but doesn’t say a word. Okay, he knows I’m blushing.
“Good night.” And he gives my hand a kiss like he always does.
“Good night, Alex.”
Falling asleep is just impossible. My mind has been ruminating for the last
two hours. What if Alex doesn’t like my investment plan? Or what if some
of the artists I’ve selected are not good enough? And, worse, what if he
doesn’t approve any of them?
I glance at the clock. One a.m. Shit. How am I gonna wake up in time
tomorrow? I can already hear Andrew rebuking, Late again, Williams?
I suddenly have an idea. I grab my iPhone and call Dad. After all, he’s
the best person to take a look at it.
“Dad? Hi. Are you home? Can we meet in the library for a second? I
need your input. Thank you. See you there.”
I put on a robe and head to the library with a copy of my investment
plan.
Dad stands behind the desk, looking sleepily out the window at the
darkness beyond. He’s wearing a long dark-blue velvet robe. Whatever the
situation, I always find him formal and serious.
“What’s going on, Petra? It’s one a.m. I really hope it’s urgent.”
“I’m pitching my investment plan to Alex for my new fund
tomorrow…”
“You’ve already finished your investment plan?”
“Yep, here.”
He starts reading the first page, then flicks through the rest. “And what
are you afraid of?”
“I don’t know… Anything I’ve forgotten to include?” Dad keeps
running his eyes over the papers. “Seems fine.” He hands me back the plan.
“What will be crucial is your presentation. Alex won’t read this.”
What? Why did I spend so many hours working on an investment plan,
then? “You’re telling me he’s not gonna read any of this?”
“Of course he won’t. You’ll have about ten minutes to tell him primarily
why you chose those particular artists and what returns you can generate for
the fund. That’s all.”
I take a deep breath. “So the pitch is basically only me talking?”
“Relax. He’s your godfather. He’s not gonna bite you.”
“Dad, I’ve never been good at presentations.”
“You just have to know your numbers, the projected returns, and you’ll
be fine.” Dad makes it seem like the easiest job in the world. “Now, if you
excuse me, I’ve got to get some sleep.” He moves across the room and
stops in front of me, putting his hands on my shoulders. “You’ll be fine,
don’t worry,” he repeats. “I am very proud of you, Petra. You’ll take the
world by storm.”
Wow. I wasn’t expecting such a great compliment. I just hope Alex will
feel the same way tomorrow.
“Thank you, Dad.” I look down, thoughtful. “You know… I’d never
have managed to be who I am today without you.” I can see his eyes
glittering. “Thank you for everything you’ve done for me, and for this
internship.” I smile tenderly at him. “I won’t disappoint you.”
He opens his arms wide and gives me a deep hug. “Oh, Petra.” With a
warm heart, he shuts his eyes for a moment. “You are the most precious gift
God has given me on this earth,” he replies, gently kissing the top of my
head.
Mr. and Mrs. Hasenfratz have decided to host a summer gathering at their
beach villa on Long Island—a small celebration before their dear and
cherished daughter leaves for a culturally insightful European escapade.
Ahem… Right… Though they don’t know how wild it will be, Emma and
her squad have every intention of making it pretty insane, naughty, and
memorable.
I join them for the weekend—a well-deserved break to chill. As I
pictured, I’m finally lying in the pool, a freshly squeezed watermelon juice
in one hand, and enjoying Emma’s continual chitchat about her latest
conquests. “Laura, Carol, and I will be in Europe for the whole summer.
Are you sure you don’t want to join us?”
“I’m actually quite busy these coming months with the internship. I’m
investing in artwork to lease to galleries and museums. You know, I’m
building up a nice collection. Alex approved my investment plan more
easily than I thought.”
“With such determination, you’ll have your own gallery in no time,
babygirl.”
“Well, the fund profits will go to Gatt-Dieren Capital. I’m entitled to a
percentage, but not everything.”
“I see. Any cute interns or executives around?”
I shake my head in amusement. This Emma will never change. “Except
the one you know, I don’t think so.”
“Damn, you’re such a lucky girl to have that hottie as your godfather.” I
can’t help but blush at her enthusiasm. “Have you ever thought about…”
she lets her words trail off while studying me.
“Thought about?”
“Well, you know… taking advantage of the situation…”
I blink twice in confusion. “What situation?”
“Oh, c’mon! Don’t be that naive. He’s not only handsome, but he also
seems to care a lot about you… Maybe you could—”
“What’re you doing after the summer?” I promptly ask, changing the
subject.
Emma chuckles, quite amused to see me that embarrassed from her talk.
“I’m moving to Bali.”
What? I nearly choke on her answer, my heart skipping a beat. “You
can’t be serious. Are you really gonna leave New York for good?”
“It’s just for a couple of months, maybe half a year. I have friends living
there, so why not?”
“Half a year? You can’t leave me alone. What am I gonna do here
without my bestie?”
“Oh, babygirl, you’re the sweetest. But you’ve got your life all figured
out. Your dad must be proud. You’re building an amazing career for
yourself. Then you’ve got your college planned at Columbia, and you’ll
meet other like-minded people.” Emma sighs. “I need to figure out what I
want in life.”
I feel my eyes watering. I want to convince her to stay, to remain here…
but I know she craves adrenaline and globe-trotting. It’d be selfish not to
encourage her.
“Well, New York without the one and only Emma Hasenfratz won’t be
the same, believe me.” I give her a deep, big hug, my heart heavy and in
pain. Emma hasn’t left yet, but I’m already missing her. We’ve been
through so many adventures over the years, so much gossip, secrets,
scandals, and above all, so much laughter. And now my big sister is leaving
New York for at least six months. I let out a sigh, containing my tears.
“Would you at least promise to be here for my birthday? It’s December
fifth, in case you don’t remember…”
“Babygirl, I won’t miss your eighteenth birthday for anything in this
world. Ms. Hasenfratz will host the most exciting and daring party this city
has ever had.”
At 1:20 a.m., I wish sleeping were easier. But the talk with Emma hasn’t
left my mind since this afternoon. Not the one that she is leaving for Bali.
No… Unfortunately, the other one. The one I wanted to avoid. So pathetic,
Petra. Of course he’s nice and caring. After all, he’s your godfather…
But as she said, what if we could…
Nope. Stop right here. You said no more boys.
I know, but Alex is not a boy, he is a man… and a very special one,
actually.
Forget it. You’ll always be his goddaughter. That’s it. He’ll never look at
you differently. Now stop being silly and sleep!
Indeed, I promised myself I’d focus and that’s what I’ve got to do. I
close my eyes and force such thoughts away.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 10
Emma has been gone for over two months. The tabloids and blogs say she
has met a Saudi prince in the south of France and is partying with him and
his friends all over the Mediterranean. But sadly I haven’t had time to chat
with her about it. I have to make sure my entire art collection gets leased by
galleries and museums in order to generate the income I’ve forecasted.
Everything must be negotiated and sorted out before I finish this internship.
Luckily, I’ve invested only in artists I know will be in high demand.
“Why’s everyone leaving their desks?” I ask Rach, who’s sitting beside
me.
“Andrew wants to talk to the interns,” she replies, standing up.
I do the same and follow her, wondering why I didn’t know about it. We
walk down to one of the small conference rooms. Since all the chairs are
already taken, we have to stand near the door.
Andrew arrives, his pace dynamic, positioning himself in front. He’s
holding a rugby ball, rolling it between his fingers, gently tossing it up and
down and catching it. I wonder why. Maybe he’s going to a game after
work.
“Thank you all for coming.” But he doesn’t say more. He waits for the
whispers and murmurs to stop.
The room finally becomes silent.
“Very well, I gathered you here because I’ll be attending a conference in
Rome next week. And the exciting news is, I’ve selected seven of you to
join me for three days in the Italian capital.” He pauses, smiling at the
curious and excited faces in the crowd. “This’ll be an amazing networking
opportunity,” he asserts, the tone as enthusiastic. “Think hedge fund
managers, executives, private bankers, big players, all in one place. So you
better have your business cards ready.”
I’m radiant, but not for the same reason. Andrew out? Oh, thank God! I
won’t miss him here for sure. My last week will feel like heaven on earth.
He glances around the room. “Jess!” And he suddenly throws the ball at
her. She manages to see it coming and grabs it tightly. “Hope you’ve got
your passport ready for Rome next week.”
Her face beams with excitement. “Oh yeah!” She sends him the ball
back. I’ve never seen Jess before, but I barely know anyone here anyway.
She has medium dark-blonde hair, is a bit taller than me, and is dressed in a
navy pantsuit with a white shirt and black heeled sandals—probably an
MBA student.
He looks around for someone else.
“Luke?” he calls before passing the ball to him.
“Oh boy, that’s amazing. Thanks Andrew.” And Luke sends it back.
Andrew plays this little game with three other male interns, all
impeccably dressed, people I’ve never seen before.
Finally, his eyes dart to the door where Rach and I are standing.
Say Rach, say Rach…
“Rach!” he shouts before throwing the ball to her.
Phew!
“Yes!” All excited, she stares at Jess, apparently her work bestie.
“Passport ready as ever, Andrew!” Rach sends him the ball back a bit more
abruptly than the rest.
There’s only one person left.
Tension is rising in the room. Every intern follows Andrew’s eyes
attentively, ready to catch their ticket to Rome at any time.
“Williams!”
What? I still manage to catch the ball right before it hits me in the face.
The crowd is as astonished as I am. After all, I’m the most antisocial
and introverted intern. Indeed, after nearly three months here, I’ve barely
spoken to anyone except to Rach, who’s also part of Andrew’s team.
Oh God, why me? I’m speechless. Everyone is expecting me to be
excited and smiley, or to say something fun and cool, but nothing. I just roll
the ball thoughtfully.
“Williams?” I look up at Andrew. “Is it a yes or a no?”
I send him the ball back with a strength I didn’t know I had.
After a few seconds of pondering, I say one word, uttered with no
visible excitement. “Okay.”
I wait near the door as the interns are leaving the conference room, the
majority quite disappointed. I don’t understand why he picked me. I always
see him hanging out with his other interns, like John and Rob—I call them
his cheerleaders—they would’ve been perfect candidates. He even used to
invite them over for drinks after work…
“Why did you choose me?”
Andrew glances around the room—there’s no one left but me. He
hesitates to reply, but he knows I’m not leaving without an answer.
“Because you’re stubborn, strongheaded, show no respect whatsoever for
the authority—”
“I thought those were the reasons why you didn’t like me,” I manage to
interpose.
“Indeed, but I could’ve also added bold, determined, perseverant,
focused… and those are the reasons why we make it in finance. So, good
for you.”
I frown, my mind still dazed and confused. Does Dad or Alex have
anything to do with it? I don’t know, but one thing is for sure—I’ll figure
this out at home later tonight.
At least once a week, Dad makes sure to free his agenda so he can have
supper at home with me. It’s the perfect occasion to catch up, one would
say, but for him, this means inquisition time to find out how I’m doing and
how I’m performing at work. “How was your week at the office?” Dad
starts. “Your internship is nearly over.”
“Quite good, actually,” I reply, my tone enthusiastic. “Did you know
Andrew picked me to be part of his group for the conference in Rome?”
“No, I didn’t know that. But I’m not surprised.”
“Why not?”
“Well, he was only going to pick the best interns. I’d have been
surprised if you were not among them.”
My face glows with a smile of joy and pride. “By the way, Mom asked
if I could take a plane and go to Rotterdam after Rome. Is it alright if I
spend the weekend there?”
“Sure. I’ll ask my assistant to book you one for Rotterdam and another
back to New York on September second. Don’t forget the fourth is your first
day at Columbia.”
“Thank you, Dad.”
We continue to enjoy our supper in silence, but I keep playing with my
food thoughtfully.
“What’s going on in that mind of yours, Petra?”
I pretend I didn’t hear him and continue twirling my pasta for a few
more seconds, until my curiosity takes over. “Dad, I need to know the
truth.”
He raises an eyebrow suspiciously. “About what?”
But I don’t reply immediately. I’m still pondering if I should go
ahead…
C’mon, Petra. Ask him.
Indeed, after so many weeks thinking about it, it’s time to gain some
courage. I take a deep breath, and, for better or for worse, I jump right in.
“About why Alexander stopped visiting me when I was seven. And please,
no lies.” I pause. “I know he came to New York many times.”
Dad doesn’t seem surprised. He probably knew it was just a matter of
time until I’d ask him about it. “I see.” He puts his cutlery down. Then he
wipes his mouth, staring off, trying to find the best words. “Very well. Let’s
just say you were slightly… too attached to him.”
With a furrowed brow, I ask, “What does that even mean? He is my
godfather. I considered him my best friend.”
Dad leans back and exhales loudly. Despite it being ten years ago, he
doesn’t seem to be as comfortable as he might have expected. “Petra”—his
tone sounds heavier than usual—“are you sure you want to know about
this?”
Damn, I’m getting anxious. Is it that bad? “Yes. Tell me.” I feel my
heart pounding so fast and so hard that it’s wounding my chest. I’m not sure
if I can handle the truth, but I want to hear it. I have to hear it.
“Well,” he starts cautiously, “when your godfather brought Amanda for
supper here the very first time, you were not happy, to say the least. In fact,
throughout the whole dinner, you looked quite upset. Alex asked you why
and you ran to sit on his lap and told him out loud in front of all our guests
that he…” Dad takes a deep breath but remains silent. It seems quite painful
to remember. My heart keeps thundering as I look at him searching for
words. “That he couldn’t love or marry anyone but you,” he spits out.
My jaw drops to the floor.
“Oh, and you also said Amanda, his dear girlfriend, was a witch. All of
that in front of ten guests! Everyone stared at him, wondering what he had
done for you to say such things. The poor guy felt so embarrassed. He’d
always been nothing but kind and supportive, treating you like his own
daughter, teaching you how to ride horses, how to paint, how to ski, and this
is how you thanked him? Humiliating him in front of his friends and
girlfriend?” he shouts, enraged at the simple memory of it. “Anyway, I took
you to the pediatrician, and the doctor told me young children can develop
deep affections and emotions toward adults. So, Alex and I decided the best
way to handle this would be for him to keep his distance from you.”
Now it’s my heart that falls on the floor.
“Dad, I was only seven! How could you take this so seriously?”
“Petra, did you imagine the consequences of your words? It could’ve
seriously damaged his reputation and our company. This is New York.
People make up stories based on anything. It was in the best interest of
everyone,” he snarls.
Breathing feels so hard. I’ve spent a considerable amount of time
wondering why Alex had left, blaming him for his absence, but the ugly
truth is now right here in front of me. I had been the embarrassment, the one
to blame, not him. “I can’t believe this…”
“Oh really? Do you remember the first painting you did?”
“Yes.”
“Do you recall what you painted?”
“No. I don’t think so.”
“Well, you should go to your atelier and find out. You’ll see why I never
gave your ‘gift’ to him. I know you’ll understand. It was painful but
necessary. You had caused enough trouble for your godfather and his
girlfriend.”
“I’m not gonna check.” My tone remains low and broken, my mind still
in shock. “I feel humiliated and embarrassed enough. I’m… I’m so sorry to
have brought up this conversation, Dad.” I let out a sigh. “I won’t do it
again.”
It’s my last day in the office before leaving for Rome. Classes at Columbia
will start right after my European trip. I feel strangely sad. To my surprise,
I’m actually enjoying working here at Gatt-Dieren Capital, managing my
fund, leasing my artworks to galleries, and collecting steady revenues. In
fact, the monthly income has far surpassed my forecasts. Based on my new
estimates, some of my paintings will be paid off within a year. It feels
amazing! I can picture myself growing the fund, reinvesting the capital, and
acquiring many new pieces. But how would I combine this with Columbia?
I might have to hire someone to negotiate the future leases…
“I heard you’re also coming to Rome?” I look up at the person
speaking. “I’m Jessica Clarkson, by the way, but everyone calls me Jess.”
We shake hands. “We should all celebrate after work and go to a bar.
Tomorrow we’re finally off to Italy.”
“I've heard good things about Ward III,” adds Rach, stepping up. “It’s
like two blocks away. Andrew went there with Rob and John once.”
Jess smiles, seeing her bestie. “Hi, Rach. Glad to see you.” I notice how
the two women look way older than me, maybe ten years more, sporting
fancy suits with heels. “I heard about that one too. Let’s go, all three of us.”
“What do you think, Williams?”
I want to decline. I’m not dressed to party. “I’m okay, but please enjoy
for me.”
“No way, girl. You’ve got to join us. It’s not far away. Just have one
drink to celebrate,” insists Rach.
I consider her suggestion for a moment. After all, it’s my last day as an
intern. I glance at my watch. Seven p.m. Not a time Dad can censure
anyway. “Alright, but no alcohol for me.”
I check my fake ID discreetly to be sure what age I have on it. I smile.
Twenty-one. Perfect!
The bar is mellow, cozy, and casual. I don’t feel underdressed. Actually,
maybe Rach and Jess are slightly too dressed up for the establishment.
We are enjoying our cocktails while discussing our future plans. The
women are finishing their MBAs in finance, specializing in asset and fund
management.
Suddenly, Jess’s phone beeps with a text. She reads it, and Rach is
curious enough to peer over and read it too.
“Williams, what about heading to Et Al? My friends are there. There’s a
private party until ten p.m. Atmosphere is dope, with a selective, older
crowd, mostly finance and banking folks. Should be great for networking.”
I have no idea what they are talking about. “You girls can go without
me. It’s already eight o’clock. I’m gonna head home.”
“Williams, are you crazy? You are over twenty-one, right?”
“Right.” At least my fake ID says so.
“Then why not come along with us? It’s alright—our friends will handle
the guest list. You can come dressed as you are.”
If the first bar was chill and perfect for me, Et Al is something else—a
selective, high-class lounge, rented out for a private party. The crowd is
older, more sophisticated and distinguished, but with a pretentious air and
stylish supermodels in attendance. A show of red-and-blue dark lighting
creates a nightclub environment. But the lounge music, although quite
sensual, is not too loud. I feel utterly underdressed as I make my way in.
“Oh yeah! Much better,” shouts Jess, taking in our surroundings.
The lounge is not too big, but has semi-open curtains to give a more
intimate atmosphere to the corner tables spread around the room. Jess and
Rach are probably feeling in their element. Jess leads the way through the
crowd, heading toward a table with two gorgeous women wearing short but
elegant black dresses and heels who are sitting on a sofa, cocktails in hand
—ready to take Manhattan by storm.
“Hey, Jess!” screams one of them. She seems to be in her mid-thirties,
older than Jess and Rach, for sure. They greet each other cheerfully. “So,
are these your friends from Gatt-Dieren?”
“Yep. Rach and Williams. Or shall we call you Petra?”
“Williams is fine.”
“I’m Sylvia.” She shakes our hands. “I work at GS. Private equity. What
do you think of the party? Nice crowd, huh?”
Jess looks around. “Oh yeah. Much older, exactly what I needed.”
Sylvia whispers something in Jess’s ear that causes her to stare across the
room and gasp in surprise, quite excited. “You are right. It’s really him.
Fuck, first round on me, then,” she says to Sylvia.
I don’t get what’s going on between the two of them, but I take a seat
beside them anyway.
“Do you know any of the women he’s with?” continues Jess, intrigued.
“Why am I not there? I should be at that table.”
“Not sure, but you need a plan,” replies Sylvia.
I have no idea what table they are talking about. “What’s going on,
Jess?” I finally dare to ask. “So much mystery.” Jess leans closer to me and
discreetly points her index finger toward a corner table in a two-step
elevated private room—separated from our area by a semi-open velvet
curtain.
I gasp at the sight of him.
“Van Dieren,” I breathe.
“Yep, the one and only.” I stare at him for a few more seconds and
exhale louder than I should. “Such a heartbreaker, right?” teases Jess. “Can
you imagine being in there?”
Definitely not! I feel extremely embarrassed to see my godfather in such
a private and intimate venue without his knowledge. After all, neither he
nor Dad know I’m here. And I’ve got the firm intention of keeping it that
way. It’s hard to shift my attention to somewhere else though. I can’t stop
wondering what he is saying to make those girls beam with joy, laugh, and
grin so much. I notice how their gazes are drawn to him, to his blue eyes, to
his sun-kissed skin contrasting with the crisp white of his shirt... A glass of
whiskey in hand, Alex is sitting with three flirty models and another male
friend—definitely not Dad, but he looks to be fifty-something.
“Rach! He’s looking over here,” shouts Jess.
Oh God… I turn my back and face away as much as possible.
A waiter holding a tray stops at our table. “Did you order five tequila
shots?”
“Yeah! That’s for us. Exactly what we needed.”
“Jess, I told you I’m not drinking.”
“Oh, Williams, it’s just one shot to celebrate. It’s nothing. You need to
chill. You know, a lot of interns do way worse than this to keep up with the
pressure.”
“Well, I don’t…”
“Just one shot. To toast to our new friendship and our upcoming trip to
Rome.”
How can I possibly decline? I stare timidly back at Van Dieren’s table,
hoping he would’ve left with someone. I wince instantly. Shit. I think he
saw me.
We all clink our glasses in excitement, and I close my eyes to drink the
shot all at once—just like my new friends. I don’t dare to look around. Alex
might still be at that table, maybe even staring at me!
“Hey, next round on me,” orders Rach to the waiter.
A few moments later, another round of tequila shots are being served.
I feel like I should decline. “I can’t drink anymore.”
“No way! Please. Just one more for me, Williams,” she implores,
handing me a new glass. “You can’t cheer on Jess’s toast and not do the
same with mine. That would be super rude. Plus, we are on the same team.”
I sigh, accepting the new tequila shot. I can only hope my godfather is
otherwise too distracted kissing some random mouth at his table to notice. I
take a quick sip then drink it all at once. I frown at the strong taste going
down my throat. Yuck!
My iPhone beeps.
Probably a WhatsApp message. Must be Emma sharing envious
pictures in the south of France to tease me. But this time, I’m also having
fun and ready to fight back with a photo in this lounge with my new friends.
I know you are here. I can see you right in front of me.
Not Emma. Nope.
I’m instantly paralyzed. Glancing over, I can see Alex glaring at me and
shaking his head. He’s not happy.
Another text. Go outside. We need to talk.
I swallow hard. It doesn’t sound good at all.
“I’m sorry, girls. I’m just going to the bathroom,” I say before standing
up, my heartbeat pounding anxiously. I walk through the lounge and make
my way out.
“I’m sure your father will be very proud of you.” I know he’s being
sarcastic. “Drinking tequila shots? Really? Let me guess, you’ve also got a
fake ID in your purse for the next round?” How does he know that? “I’m
tired of keeping secrets from Roy; he needs to know about your behavior.
You’re not yet an adult, Petra, so don’t act like you are.”
“If you tell him, I’ll share your private number with all the interns,
including Rach and Jess. They were quite explicit about what they would do
to you.”
“Oh, great. Now my goddaughter is threatening me?”
“Correction: I’m negotiating. That’s what you always told me to do.”
His scowl softens with a suppressed laugh. “Alright, I won’t tell him,
but now it’s time for you to go home.”
“I’m not gonna spend another evening alone.” There’s some sort of
sorrow in my tone that I wasn’t expecting. “I’m with my new friends, and
I’m enjoying it.”
He lets out a sigh. After all, he can’t blame me. At my age, I know Alex
had an amazing mother, siblings, and lots of friends to keep him company.
But for me, the house is empty, like most evenings. We both know Dad’s at
a dinner and will come home late as usual.
“I’m sorry. I forgot Roy is not at home.” He seems to be texting
someone quickly, then looks back at me. “What if we go somewhere and
have dinner? Do you remember that small Italian-American bistro in Soho
with the amazing chocolate cake and strawberry milkshakes?”
“Galli? I haven’t been there in ages. And it was more accurately a warm
fondant brownie with coffee ice cream.” I lick my lips, picturing that
dessert. “For sure, the best in town.”
“Would you like to go there?”
“What a question.”
Having dinner like in the good old days with my godfather is beyond
anything I could have imagined. I love Italian food, more precisely Galli,
which is where I used to go with him ten years ago. At the time, he’d order
spaghetti alla bolognese, followed by the warm brownie. He also used to
order a special strawberry milkshake for me. Each time he would ask, they
would reply, “We don’t usually have strawberry milkshakes, but for such an
adorable child, we can make an exception.” My face would beam with joy
every time the waiter would say that. This time is no exception—Alex
orders exactly that.
“We don’t usually have strawberry milkshakes,” replies the beautiful
Italian waitress.
“I used to come here with my goddaughter ten years ago, and since she
couldn’t drink alcohol, they would prepare it.”
“Oh, she’s your goddaughter?”
I nod, putting on my most childlike face.
“Correct,” Alex replies with a charming smile.
“I’m sure we can do something for her.”
“You are delightful. What’s your name?”
“Isabella.”
“Wonderful name, Isabella.”
She blushes at the sound of his voice.
“Are you from here?” he asks.
“No, I’m from Sicily, Palermo. I just moved to New York.”
“New York is very lucky to have you.”
Isabella replies with a grin, her cheeks flushed.
I must say, I’m quite entertained observing my godfather flirting with
someone. “A heartbreaker,” as Rach and Jess would say. Well, sounds quite
accurate. I wonder if he’ll be the same in Rome. My lips twitch into a smile
as I picture him flirting, but this time in Italian. To my surprise, though, I
can’t picture him doing that with anyone...
But me.
Petra! I immediately brush such thoughts away.
While we finish our main course, I look pensively at the last bit of spaghetti
on my plate. “I know why you left,” I declare. “I spoke to Dad…” It’s so
hard to talk about it though. “I also owe you an apology.” I look up at him,
but I’ve got to lower my gaze again. “I’m… I’m really sorry for the
embarrassment I caused. I feel terrible.”
“Petra, it’s all forgotten.” He reaches for my hand; the corners of my
mouth lift timidly at his touch. I look again into his blue eyes and try hard
not to get lost in them. Oh boy. “You were just a child. Don’t worry about
it.” He pauses. “Honestly, I found it cute.”
I burst into laughter. “Only you would say something like that.” I shake
my head, beaming with joy. “It wasn’t cute. Rather embarrassing. Very
embarrassing. I’m so sorry for Amanda...”
“It’s all good, really. Don’t worry about it.” God, his smile is enough to
heat up the entire room. “So, am I forgiven now?”
“Of course you are.” I giggle at his question. “What about me?”
“Hmm… Only if you promise not to call my next girlfriend a witch.”
“I can’t promise that.”
We both laugh.
“Speaking of girlfriends—”
“I’m not into girls, no,” I interpose playfully.
“I figured that out. Look, in Rome, just be careful, alright? Mainly with
Andrew. Neither your dad nor I will be there to protect you.”
What? You’re not joining us? My heart skips a beat. But who’ll be there
to eat a traditional gelato with me while exploring the Piazza di Trevi?
Who’ll be there to make me laugh? Who’ll be there to hold and kiss my
hands and make me feel so special and safe? Andrew? Yuck! Definitely
not!
Hmm... I’ve suddenly got a plan.
“Well, I find him cute,” I say, taking a sip of my strawberry milkshake.
This’ll be fun. I wait patiently for his reaction.
“Who? Andrew?”
“Yes. Andrew Sullivan.”
“Petra, forget it. Andrew is definitely not a good fit for you.”
“And how do you know that?”
“First, he is way too old. Do you know how old is he? At least thirty-
three.”
“And you are forty, yet so many young girls are into you. Look at
Emma.”
“Emma is definitely not a role model to follow,” he snaps.
“I don’t think Andrew sees it as a problem either…”
“He’s a real douchebag!” I try hard to suppress a victorious smile. His
concerns about Andrew are even more palpable than I expected. “Promise
me you’ll behave in Rome.”
I take another sip with amusement. “We’ll see.”
“Who ordered the warm chocolate brownie?” asks Isabella staring at
him.
“It’s for her.”
Isabella bends slightly over the table, putting her cleavage on display
for Alex. Looks like she wants him to stare. She places the brownie in front
of me and a spoon in front of Alex, handing him a napkin. “I brought you
an extra spoon in case you want a taste. And here’s a napkin.” She winks at
him before leaving.
Discreetly, he opens the white paper napkin to find her phone number
written down. A cheeky smile settles on his lips, and I find myself
mirroring it.
“You’re such a heartbreaker, Mr. Van Dieren,” I tease as usual, head
shaking.
“What can I do?” He puts the napkin in his pocket. “Too many
desperate women in Manhattan…”
“Of course, poor you. Trying to save them all.” I can’t help but laugh.
“Were you like that with Amanda?”
He cringes at the question. “Relationships are complex, Petra…”
“Or you are complex?”
He exhales loudly in return. “Maybe. Well, eat your brownie before it
gets cold.”
I take my spoon, look down at my prey already melting, and attack my
defenseless brownie, taking a first mouthful.
“How is it?”
“Mmmm…” I utter, savoring the brownie as it dissolves in my mouth.
“The best thing in the world,” I garble. “Oh, sorry. Do you want to try
some?”
He chuckles, reaches out to the corner of my lips with his thumb, and
wipes some chocolate crumbs away. Then he puts his fingertip in his
mouth, closes his eyes for an instant, and smiles. “You are right, Petra. The
best thing in the world.”
“Here we are,” announces the driver, pulling up to my building’s entrance.
Painfully for me, this means the end of my evening. I sigh in
discontentment. After all, I don’t even know if he’ll be joining me in Rome
or not. I just hope my little plan will work. Seated in the back seat with
Alexander, in a decisive but risky move, I slide my body close to his,
incline my head, and give him a tender kiss on the cheek. “Thank you for
the brownie. It was delicious,” I murmur with a gentle voice.
But he looks quite upset and grabs my hand right before I leave.
“Petra,” he calls suddenly, his tone deep and severe.
“Yes?”
“Kindly don’t do that again.”
“Do what?”
“Kiss me on the cheek.”
“Why not?”
“Because I said so,” he snarls back.
“You greet every girl this way, why not me?”
Alex lets out a breath, displeased with my typical curiosity and
stubbornness, but I wait patiently for his answer.
“I prefer not to have your mouth too close to mine. Can you do that?”
Wow. It seems like only the truth wanted to come out. Amusement
twinkles in my eyes and plays with the corners of my lips. I must admit, it’s
my guiltiest pleasure to make him feel vulnerable. Alex has always looked
so confident, so tough, so rugged, so unshakeable with his “aristocratic
playboy” attitude and his piercing blue eyes. Having the power to make him
fall from his pedestal with a simple gesture of tenderness feels too divine to
stop. The more he says not to, the more I want to come closer and kiss him
again. But instead, leaving my imagination behind, I politely nod and leave
the car.
I should have been happy and delighted to see little Lucy waiting for me
naked upon my arrival, kneeling in the hallway of my condo, as always. But
my mood is not as playful as I expected. After all, Petra will be in Rome for
three nights, far from everyone and dangerously close to Andrew… Damn,
that guy is a real douchebag. And she seems to like him. How? Well, they
spent three months working in the same office, after all… I bet Andrew is
already planning something in Rome with her. And they are staying in the
same hotel. I shiver picturing them. Fuck. This time I won’t even be
around...
“My lord? Everything alright?”
I look down at Lucy, kneeling just in front of me while I rest on the sofa
holding her leash. She wanted to suck me, but I told her I was tired.
It takes between eight and nine hours to get to Rome, maybe if I get a
flight in the afternoon… I sigh. Why am I even so worried? Petra is nearly
an adult… But I did promise her no one would ever hurt her again. And a
long time ago, I also gave her that necklace… I should give it back to her
actually…
“My lord?”
I blink again at the sound of Lucy’s voice and let out a sigh. “I have a
lot on my mind today,” I snap.
“Maybe I can help you relax…” Lucy lets her words trail off as she tries
for the second time to unfasten my belt. I want to decline again, but it’d be
selfish. I’ve already rescheduled with her so many times. I take a deep
breath and brush my thoughts away. “Show me, then.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 11
“Let’s take a group photo. Williams! Don’t be shy,” shouts Andrew while a
member of the crew holds up his iPhone, ready to capture the moment.
I hate photos, but what can I say? I join the group and try to put on a
smile, but I can’t compete with the excitement of my colleagues, who are
all dressed up like successful executives for the sake of traveling in a
Gulfstream G650.
We are leaving at eight a.m. from Teterboro—a small private airport but
definitely the closest one to downtown Manhattan, just across the George
Washington Bridge. I usually travel from here to go to Rotterdam, as it’s
less than a twenty-five-minute drive from home.
Jess can’t hide her enthusiasm as she steps onto the plane. Her gaze
alights on the comfortable beige leather seats, the perfumed wet towel
handed to her, and the champagne already being poured by the friendly
female crew. “I’m loving finance. Rach, please take a pic of me for
Instagram. Get the seat and the window too.”
In fact, Jess has gone overboard in getting ready for the trip: ivory
pantsuit, beige pumps, red lipstick, and some gold jewelry, which makes her
look even older than usual. I roll my eyes. Pathetic.
I can’t enjoy the trip. After all, Alexander is nowhere to be seen. Maybe
I should have scared him further about Andrew...
Speaking of Andrew, here he is entertaining his other interns by doing a
photoshoot with them in the jet, which will undoubtedly be shared on social
media in the next few minutes. “Williams, would you like a picture with
your glass of champagne?” he asks.
“No, it’s okay. Thank you.”
“Petra doesn’t have social media,” adds Rach.
Jess gapes in shock. “What? You’re kidding. Not even Instagram?”
“No. Just WhatsApp.”
The pilot and the cabin supervisor step in and greet Andrew before
welcoming the rest of the group. “Good morning, ladies and gentlemen. My
name is Richard Heinze, and I will be the pilot onboard this flight,
destination Ciampino Airport, Rome. The flight duration is expected to be
between eight and nine hours. If the weather remains stable, we should
arrive by ten p.m. local time, four p.m. Eastern Standard Time. If you have
any questions, please ask my colleague, Sabrina, who is supervising the
cabin crew. I wish you all a very pleasant flight.”
We all smile and thank the pilot for his message, but he stares especially
at me and nods. I look down, hoping no one else noticed.
While everyone is discussing their plans for Rome, how to retire at the age
of fifty, and whether it would be worthwhile to own a plane, I excuse
myself and retreat to the beige leather sofa at the very back of the cabin
with my book and noise-canceling earbuds.
“What’s wrong, Williams? Everyone seems excited about Rome but
you. Are you missing your desk already?” teases Andrew, sitting beside me
on the sofa.
Although I’m annoyed at being disturbed, I remove my earbuds out of
politeness. “I’m fine, don’t worry. I just like to be in my corner and read.”
But Andrew’s feeling chatty. “Is it your first time abroad?”
“No, I’ve been abroad many times. I’m alright, really.” I conclude with
a polite smile, my eyes shifting back to my book, yet Andrew seems to be
studying me.
“If you want to talk, I’m here. I know you like to play tough, but we are
all human. We all have our ups and downs.”
Wow. It doesn’t sound like Andrew at all. His tone is more caring,
empathetic, sensitive, and compassionate. Heck, it even feels quite
reassuring.
“I’m just…” I let out a breath. “I’m missing a guy in New York, and he
is not even my boyfriend...”
“See? Was that so hard to get off your chest?”
“A bit.”
“Glad to know there is more than work in your life. I thought you had a
heart made of stone.”
“Well, the worst part is, he’s not even interested in me. We are just
friends. He has tons of gorgeous women around him anyway…” I look
down, thoughtful. “I just hope this trip will help me forget him.” Oops! I
feel like I’ve just said too much.
Andrew swallows hard and leans slightly closer to me. “If you feel like
talking about it, I’m free the last evening before we come back. We can
have dinner somewhere nice… I mean, just a friendly one—nothing else.”
I don’t know what to say. Is he bluffing? Or does he have some twisted
intention in mind? I can’t tell. However, I do recall Alex warning me.
“Thanks for the invite,” I politely reply before reopening my book.
He sighs, maybe disappointed, but finally leaves.
When I arrive for breakfast, I realize all the interns are already here
indulging in the buffet. Inseparable Jess and Rach are alone at a table by
themselves. I manage to make it down at 7:10, the last one. Fortunately, I
don’t see Andrew around. Everyone has made quite an effort with their
appearances, looking so sharp and expensive, straight from a fashion
magazine. Jess opted for a light-blue pantsuit with a white silk top and
beige pumps, impeccable hair and makeup combined with a Bulgari purse,
while Rach wears wide-leg beige pants and a white shirt.
“Hey, Williams. Come and join us,” greets Jess, the first to notice me.
“Hi, Jess. Hi, Rach. Good morning. Wow. You girls look as wonderful
as ever.”
They smile back at me.
“Well, hopefully we will meet some interesting people today,” starts
Jess. “I’ve looked at the names of the fund managers coming—they’re
mostly from Milan, London, Frankfurt, and Paris. I’ve always wanted to
come to Europe after my MBA and gain some experience here.”
“Gatt-Dieren has an office in Amsterdam, I think,” adds Rach.
“Yep, they do. I heard they’re also looking to expand into Asia.”
“How do you know that?” I ask, surprised at not knowing that myself.
“Well, I have my sources,” Jess replies with a sly smile before looking
strangely at me. “You know, Williams, don’t take this the wrong way, but
why don’t you wear a suit and heels like everyone else? You’ll look more
mature and far more confident. We’re in such elegant surroundings and we
are representing the company. Look around, everyone is at their best.”
I raise an eyebrow. I knew sooner or later Ms. Jess would unleash some
sort of comment about my looks. After all, I’ve always worn skinny jeans
and simple flats combined with a smart blazer that I’d leave hanging on my
chair. But I like my style—today I’ve decided to wear white skinny jeans
paired with elegant camel flats and a striped white-and-light-blue shirt,
sleeves already up to the elbows. No jacket—it’s way too hot. My long
black hair is wild and wavy like usual, with a barrette in the back. I’ve
applied just some mascara and a natural gloss on my lips. “I don’t like
heels,” I reply with a friendly smile. “Either flats or sneakers.”
“I know, but you are in Italy. People are dressing up for the conference.
Europeans love to dress up.” What does she have anything to say about my
looks?
“Don’t worry, Williams. Jess is just trying to help,” intervenes Rach.
“So you can be the best version of yourself.”
“I see,” I nod politely. “Thanks for the advice.”
The Ritz ballroom takes everyone’s breath away. Some two hundred people
are sitting in the majestic room featuring crystal chandeliers and a hand-
painted high ceiling. Not quite as resplendent as the Sistine Chapel, but
truly remarkable.
Jess is right—everyone’s looking radiant and at their very best in
elegant and formal suits, some with ties, others without. Italians are
upholding their country’s reputation and are by far the most stylish. The
event moderator welcomes everyone, and the first session begins.
After a ninety-minute panel on the changing financial landscape, it’s
finally time for a coffee break. The audience quickly moves to the buffet,
gathering outside.
“Time for networking,” adds Jess.
I grab a tea and stand alone on the edge of the group, already missing
my book and earbuds. I glance around and see Jess and Rach talking to two,
what seem to be, Italian fund managers—they are probably in their fifties,
Dad’s age—laughing hard at their jokes and exchanging business cards. I
roll my eyes.
I decide to leave and head back to my seat in the conference room.
Since everyone’s still outside, I’m finally alone, enjoying the wonderful
silence.
I grab my iPhone and text, I miss you so much. Currently in Rome, such
a boring kiss-ass conference. Save me! Xx. While this would’ve been the
perfect message to send to Alexander, I send it to Emma instead. I would’ve
never expected, but I’m missing so much Emma’s careless attitude, her rock
’n’ roll style, her overpriced big dark T-shirts, her slang, her nostril
piercing, her bad manners, her insolence… Emma is the opposite of
everything here. And right now, I feel just like Emma, but with the good
manners, the good looks, and polished language.
To my surprise, she immediately texts back. Hey, babygirl! In Mykonos
now. What’s up in Rome? Where are the hotties?
She knows so well how to put a smile on my face. No hotties, just plain,
boring people, I decide to reply.
Emma’s typing… What about Van Dieren? Not there? He’s a hottie, and
def not a boring one.
Ugh! Why does she have to mention him? Van Dieren played smart. He
didn’t come. If I knew it would be this boring, I wouldn’t have come either.
Indeed, now it’s all clear in my mind. Unless Alex wanted to have some
fun like those Italian managers hanging out with two young MBA girls,
there is nothing for him at this conference. He would’ve only been here to
enjoy Rome—the downtown, the finest restaurants, the drinks, the nightlife,
and the Italian women. He has no time to waste at this tedious event—that’s
why he sent Andrew and his interns.
Following lunch, some of the attendees have decided to go to the bar near
reception to taste the hotel’s newest signature cocktails. Looks like
Giovanni, one of the Italian hedge fund managers, and Jess are among
them.
I, on the other hand, decide to go back to the conference room. After all,
the next session is starting in five minutes. The room darkens and a new
moderator steps onto the stage, introducing the panelists who’ll cover
alternative investment strategies.
About twenty-five minutes in, Jess finally emerges, making her way
from the back to take the seat beside me. She’s holding her purse and a
business card. I stare discreetly at her while she’s sitting down. Her face is
unusually glowing, her mind miles away, her smile like never before.
“Are you okay?” I ask.
“Williams, this is the best conference ever. I’m so happy to be here.”
I lift my brow, smiling at her. “May I know why?”
“Do you know what I have here?” She asks while waving the business
card.
“Giovanni’s business card?”
“Nope. Much better.”
I chuckle. “The Pope’s?”
“This is the business card.” She sniffs it proudly.
I burst into laughter, head shaking.
“And no, Williams, I’m not gonna share it with you.”
“I don’t even know whose it is.”
Regardless, I’m quite happy to see Jess in such a playful mood, a good
change from her usual formal attitude.
“Okay, you can hold it for one second.” Jess hands me the card.
I read the name.
What? I blink many times and read it again. “Alexander Van Dieren?”
My jaw and heart fall to the floor.
“And time’s up.” She takes the card back abruptly.
“Where did you get this?” I’m confused. Did I read it correctly? Is it
really his?
“He just gave it to me. I met him in the lobby. You know that hedge
fund manager I met this morning, Giovanni?” I nod. “Well, we were talking
about the conference, and all of a sudden, when Van Dieren arrives,
Giovanni greets him, they start chatting, and he finally introduces me to
him.” She lets out a sigh. “I obviously told him I’m one of his interns. So he
smiles and asks me if I’m enjoying the internship and the conference. We
spoke a bit...” Jess looks at me with a twinkle in her eye, her face beaming.
“Oh gosh, his blue eyes, his gaze…” Okay, she is floating on cloud nine.
“He gives you the feeling that you’re the most important person in the
world, looking straight into your eyes… It was so hard to concentrate.”
I try hard not to giggle, but seeing formal Jess talking and acting like a
little girl is so delightful. I must say, though, she’s describing him perfectly.
“I’m happy you finally met him.” But mainly I’m happy to know he’s here.
I wonder if he came because of me, or because of something else. After all,
he didn’t text, not even to ask how I was doing! No. Absolutely nothing. I
have to figure this out.
“Where’re you going?” she asks, seeing me rise from my seat. “Don’t
tell me you’re gonna ask Giovanni for an intro?”
“Not at all. I have a few things to do. See you later.”
My footsteps are faster than usual. My heartbeat too. I walk down the
hallway, nervous like the day I went to his office to pitch my investment
plan. I have to be sure it’s really him. I step into the grand lobby and look
around.
Hidden among a group of men, where laughter is emanating, I can
distinguish a tall, lean figure, impeccably dressed for summertime—white
slim pants, a fitted light-blue shirt, sleeves rolled up to his elbows, a hand in
his pocket and another holding his sunglasses. His mid-length hair is wild
and wavy. I cross my arms, observing him. He’s definitely not dressed like
the rest of his entourage, which sport formal jackets and suits. Alexander
appears to be on vacation.
He looks up and notices me.
I can’t hear what he is saying to his friends, but they shake his hand and
suddenly walk away, returning to the conference.
Alex’s finally alone.
He gazes back at me and smiles. Oh God. This is not my imagination
fooling me—my godfather is really here in Rome, in the grand lobby of the
St. Regis, standing right in front of me.
I can feel my excitement pounding hard in my chest. “You were not
supposed to be here…” I rebuke.
“Williams,” he voices deliciously. I notice how his eyes dart from my
face to my clothes all the way down to my feet, probably amused I’d chosen
to dress the same. “I had to meet some folks from Milan and Singapore who
were coming to the conference.”
“Of course,” I nod in sarcasm, but the corners of my mouth raise up
with joy. I want so much to jump on him, wrap my arms around his neck,
and kiss his cheek repeatedly, but the interns or Andrew could arrive at any
time. Speaking of Andrew…
“Mr. Van Dieren.”
“Andrew.” Alex rolls his eyes and shakes his hand.
“What a pleasant surprise.” Andrew’s face beams while he shakes
Alex’s hand for longer than usual. “I’m sorry I didn’t know you’d be
joining; otherwise I’d have—”
“It’s alright. I’m not attending the conference. I’m just meeting with
some of the attendees.”
Andrew can tell he’s interrupting, as Alex seems distant, staring away.
“Very well. If you need anything, I’ll be in the conference room.”
Alex nods at him and remains silent until Andrew disappears
completely from our sight. “So, are you enjoying Rome?”
My smile gets wider. Now that you are here, yes! “Rome? I haven’t
even managed to step outside yet. We’ve been locked in that room forever.
But the panels are interesting, plus Andrew is amazing. He’s been very
supportive.” I know he doesn’t like him. I notice how Jess was right—Alex
is staring intently into my eyes. I feel my cheeks flushing. I smile with a
dash of embarrassment, lower my gaze, and tuck some hair behind my ear.
“Andrew? I see…” He ponders for a brief moment. “I’m going for a
walk. Would you like to join?”
Rome is the kind of city the more you walk around, the more you fall in
love with it, from the old historic monuments standing on every corner to
the small and charming terraces, the narrow streets, and the many
sculptured fountains. To me, it feels like walking in an open museum for the
ancient arts. And the weather is so warm. No wonder Italians have so many
gelatarie around.
I stop once more, this time to observe the Fontana del Mosè, a
monumental marble and travertine fountain near the hotel.
Alex pulls out his iPhone. “Let me take a picture of you.”
I put on my sweetest smile and quickly fix my hair as he checks the best
angle for the photo. Click. “Perfect. I’ll send it to Roy. He’ll be delighted.”
“Right…” I hope it’s just an excuse to keep a picture of me in his
phone. “It’s so warm. We should go for ice cream.”
He reaches for my hand and holds it tight. “I know a good place nearby,
but we have to jaywalk.” He might have interlocked his fingers with mine
just to safely cross the street, but I couldn’t care less—my heart either. I
smile feeling his touch. Even if it’s just his hand, I’ve missed it terribly.
We finally step into one of his favorite gelaterie—the 119-year-old
Giolitti, a landmark in the city. I lick my lips at the colorful flavors
displayed in the glass case. Everything looks so damn delicious!
“Which one do you want?” he asks.
It seems impossible to choose between so many flavors. “Hmm… I
don’t know. Maybe chocolate and coffee…” He shakes his head and sighs.
“And you?”
“Pistachio and almond. I’d recommend you have the same.”
“Nope. Doesn’t sound good,” I reply, giggling.
“You’ll regret it,” he warns just before ordering two cones. I don’t think
so. I’m quite confident my choice is great; he’s probably just teasing.
After a brief moment, he hands me an ice cream cone with my chosen
flavors. And it looks really yummy!
“Grazie. Arrivederci.”
We leave the shop and walk back to the hotel while savoring our
respective ice creams.
“Petra, I must say, you made a huge mistake...”
“Why?”
“This combination is wonderful,” he praises.
I don’t believe him, but he knows I’m curious. “Alright, let me taste.” I
reach out and hold his cone, but he pulls it away.
“You’re not gonna lick my ice cream. Forget about it. You should have
listened to me.”
“I need to know. I won’t live happily if I’m not certain mine is better
than yours.”
“Of course my ice cream is better than yours. No doubt about it.” Since
we don’t have any spoons, he takes a bit with his index fingertip. “Here.”
I’m certain mine is on point, but nevertheless, I hold his finger, open my
mouth, and suck off the drop of ice cream, letting my palate find the flavor.
“Hmm… this is the pistachio one?”
He nods. “You have to admit, Petra. I know it’s hard, but I won.”
I giggle loudly. “Why do you always pick the best flavors?”
“I told you to get pistachio and almond. It’s the perfect combination.
You never listen…”
“I thought coffee and chocolate would have been great. But now I
realize it’s way too sweet, even for me.”
“Poor little Petra,” he teases. “No need to find excuses—you won’t get
any more of mine.”
After dinner, I find Andrew alone in the lounge working on his computer.
He’s wearing glasses for the first time. I decide to sit on the chair beside
him. “Hi, Andrew.” Now it’s my turn to be all chatty.
By the look on his face, he didn’t expect me to be here. “Hi, Williams.”
“Are we still up for tomorrow evening?”
He raises his eyebrows. “What do you mean?”
“Well, tomorrow is our last night, so I thought we could go ‘somewhere
nice,’ as you said on the plane…”
Andrew swallows hard, looks around to see if anyone is staring, and
moves slightly closer to me. “You mean, you want to have dinner?” he asks,
his voice barely audible.
“Yes, sure, why not? I was a bit sad that day and you were so kind…” I
give him my sweetest smile.
“Okay, um, great. I’ll ask the concierge to make a reservation, and we
can meet tomorrow at nine p.m. here in the lobby. The other interns should
be well entertained at the conference dinner.”
“Perfect.” I stand up, happy to have convinced him so easily.
“Williams?”
“Yes?”
He looks around once more. “This stays between us. Not a word to
anyone, alright? Otherwise it will put us in a very delicate situation…” he
murmurs.
“Of course. Don’t worry,” I reassure, smiling confidently at him. “Well,
see you tomorrow.”
If just four months ago someone would have told me I’d be having a
romantic dinner in Rome with Alexander Van Dieren at a fine-dining
rooftop restaurant with the most beautiful views of the old city, I would’ve
never ever believed it. And yet, here I am sitting beside him.
I look intently at my menu (the English version), while Mr. Van Dieren
is scanning his Italian one.
“Buonasera, signora e signore,” elegantly greets the waiter. “Preferite
che parli in inglese o italiano?”
“Buonasera, inglese, per favore,” replies Alex.
“Very well. Welcome to the Mirabelle restaurant. My name is Roberto,
and I’ll be your waiter for this evening. Would you like to start with a flute
of champagne? Or do you have a preference for wine? Or a cocktail
maybe?”
Alex stares back at me, thinking what to order, but I reply first. “A glass
of champagne is perfect. Thank you.”
“Molto bene. And here is our wine list for dinner.”
“Thank you,” I add before our waiter leaves. I feel Alex is about to
unleash some sort of comment about my choice. “Before you even start, it’s
totally legal to drink alcohol in Italy if you’re sixteen or older.”
“I know that.” He gives me that charming smile. “I simply wanted to
ask why you didn’t let me pick the champagne. You know, not all
champagnes are the same. I just hope he will bring a good one.”
“Oh…” I bite my lip and promptly change the subject. “Have you been
here before?”
“Not to this one, but Andrew had a table reserved here.”
“How do you know that?”
“Well, he called the concierge, who told me.”
“Unbelievable. So the concierge was paid to report to you everything
our group does?”
“Of course not. I paid the concierge only to report about you and
Andrew.”
“That sounds creepy….” But I like it nevertheless.
“Your dad explicitly asked me to watch out for you on this trip.”
“It was none of your business if he wanted to have dinner with me. But
anyway, I guess he would bow to anything you say to fall into your good
graces and land a promotion.”
“Probably,” he admits. “I told you he wasn’t a good fit.”
“So who is a good fit? Tell me,” I decide to ask.
Nothing comes out of his mouth.
He just replies with a side smile, looking tenderly into my eyes—or into
my heart? I know he’d never say me, but somehow his gaze is enough to
give me an answer. I can hear my own pulse bouncing inside my chest—not
from excitement, joy, or happiness, but from fear that he’ll never go any
further with me.
“Someone who cares about you,” he utters, his voice so soft and warm
that I skip a breath.
Oh, Alex. I close my eyes for a brief instant, trying to contain feelings
that I shouldn’t let emerge. We shouldn’t even have talks like this. I have to
change the subject. “Is this dinner mostly to watch me because Dad told
you so?”
He chuckles at my question. “Indeed. I’m just doing my duty, little
Petra.”
Entertained with his own play, he takes his glass of champagne.
“I beg to differ,” I say, taking mine. “Cheers, then. To your horrors of
having to dine with me.”
“Sounds like a good toast.”
And we clink our flutes.
When our waiter arrives, he orders the tagliatelle ai funghi porcini. This
time I decide to follow his choice. It’s actually a great one. The pasta is
delicious, and the red wine even better.
“You start at Columbia soon, right?” he asks, taking a sip from his glass.
“September fourth,” I reply, letting out a sigh. “I’m gonna miss my
internship. But at least I’m glad the artwork I acquired is all leased. You’ll
need a manager to take care of it, but I’m sure you can grow it and make it
even more profitable.”
“This fund is yours, Petra. It doesn’t belong to the firm. We invested
privately for you.”
“But...” I blink twice, confused. “What about the fund returns? I’m sure
you want a commission.”
While smiling at me, he takes my hands, caressing them softly with his
thumbs. “You know what I want?” Oh God, why does he have to look at me
like that? Since words aren’t coming, I shake my head. “To see you happy.
If economics at Columbia doesn’t appeal to you after the first semester,
you’ll be able to focus on liberal arts and follow your passion. If your dad
doesn’t support you, you’ll always have your own capital to finance your
dreams.”
“So that was the plan from the beginning? For me to have my own
revenue without Dad owning it?”
“Feel free to thank me later.” His eyes hold a glint of humor, and a
charming smile emerges from the corners of his mouth right before he takes
a sip of his wine.
In that instant, I feel a sudden urge to kiss him. This time not on the
cheek. He’ll reject you, Petra. Don’t be stupid. Too afraid to be denied, I opt
to entwine our hands and hold his fingers tight. He feels it. He probably
also feels my heart pounding faster and louder as I look at him with parted
lips. He brings my hand to his mouth, shuts his eyes, and gives it a lingering
kiss. My breath stops for a moment. While my eyes devour his warm lips
kissing my hand with relish, I wonder how it’d feel having them on my lips
instead. I know he wants more… or at least that’s what I hope.
Unfortunately, it’s hard not to fall for him. Alexander is a great listener,
a charmer, and an irresistible gentleman. In Manhattan, he’s a heartbreaker.
But for me, he’s always been a confidant, a best friend, a protector. I have
realized there is no one in this world I like to spend my time with as much
as with him. And no matter how long I spend in his company, it’s just never
enough. Oh boy. I feel like I’m seven all over again. Except now I'm no
longer a child, except now we could really—
“Are you tired?” he asks while we are finishing our espressos, a bottle
of Barolo from Bruno Giacosa later and the bill already settled.
“No, why?”
“I would like to show you something.”
We leave the restaurant, take a taxi, and go to the Trevi district. We
walk down to the Piazza di Trevi. The ground is made of paved stones,
making it difficult to walk in heels without tottering. He offers his arm for
support, and I gladly take it.
We have finally reached the fountain, featuring a triumphal arch in the
center with Triton guiding Oceanus’s shell chariot. The entire piazza and
the white marble fontana are lit with warm mellow strobes. I get a twinkle
in my eye while contemplating such a masterpiece. Some tourists are still
wandering around, throwing coins in the water, while a guitarist is playing
and singing an Italian melody.
“Do you know how to dance?” He reaches out and places a hand on the
small of my back, while holding my right hand in the air. And before I can
say no, I see my arm draping across his shoulder and my feet swaying to the
music. I blush nervously, my gaze down.
As if no one else were here, we start slow dancing in the middle of the
piazza. I laugh as he spins me around, my hair flowing. He brings my body
closer to his, and cheek-to-cheek we move slowly back and forth with the
music. Jeez! I love to feel his warm skin against mine. I can’t help but
breathe in his scent deeply. My heart’s racing like never before. I tremble at
the idea that he might hear it too. I’m dangerously close to his lips, and
although I’d never dare to kiss them, I can’t help but wonder what they taste
like.
“I wish everything could be this simple,” he murmurs, pressing those
lips against my forehead.
I don’t reply back. It feels too hard. I just shut my eyes and enjoy the
moment as much as I can—after all, I know it won’t last forever.
When the music stops, Alex gives the musician a generous tip and holds
my hand, bringing me to the center of the Fontana di Trevi. I marvel at the
imposing sculpture of Oceanus—god of the sea.
“Have you ever been here at night?” he asks.
“No, never. It’s much better than during the day.”
“Here,” he says, giving me a coin. “Time to make a wish.”
I shut my eyes, bring the coin close to my chest, think about a wish, and
throw it into the fountain. When I reopen them, Alex’s staring intently, a
smile on his face. “Well, what about you?”
He also closes his eyes, takes a deep breath, and throws a coin into the
water. “This must be the biggest cliché in Rome,” he confesses, laughing.
“Hmm…” I bite my lip thoughtfully. “In order to be the biggest cliché,
we would’ve been lovers and you would’ve already kissed me by now,” I
tease (or not) while my tipsy blue eyes twinkle at him.
Much to my surprise, he suddenly bursts out laughing, “I’m sure
Andrew would’ve loved to do so,” he states with confidence, until he meets
my gaze again, clears his throat, and glances nervously at his watch. “It’s
getting late. We should go back to the hotel.”
I’m not pleased, but he’s already booking an Uber on his iPhone. How
can I extend my evening with him? I’ve got an idea, a very dangerous one
he’ll probably decline, but nevertheless, I take a deep breath and dare to
ask, “Would you offer me a last drink in your room?” Alex gawks in shock.
“Don’t you have tea to offer?” I insist.
He doesn’t know what to say or do. Undecided, he ponders a bit further.
“Petra, I don’t think it’s appropriate to invite you to my room.”
“Why not? Are you afraid of something?”
“Of course not,” he replies straightaway. His eyes dart down while he
thinks something through. “Alright, but just one cup of tea.”
I don’t see him the next day. He doesn’t text me either. However I did
receive a message from Dad wishing me a safe flight to Rotterdam and I
also talked to him over the phone, sharing my thoughts about the
conference on the way to Ciampino Airport. Nevertheless, I’m as happy as
I’ve ever been. And why wouldn’t I be? I’ve just had the most amazing
evening of my life. I go to the bathroom on the plane to refresh myself. I
can’t help but notice the beautiful necklace staring back at me. I’m
unusually glowing. Suddenly, I narrow my eyes at a strange pinkish mark
on my neck. Holy shit. My face beams with joy. It’s him—he gave me a
hickey! I blush, remembering my evening. I’m certain he didn’t do it
accidentally; he wants me. This is the proof. I decide to hide it with a silk
scarf around my neck. After all, no one, including my mom, needs to see
this.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 12
Mom lives on a beautiful property outside Rotterdam, on her own since the
divorce from Dad. She enjoys her occasional “friends,” but no one serious
enough to introduce me. She has, nevertheless, the amazing Anika, her
loyal help. I’ve often wondered how Mom spends her days. From what
she’s said, she usually travels, takes care of her garden, or helps some
female-oriented organization. In fact, Mom has been particularly focused on
female causes, investing her time and resources in many nonprofits that
provide support for victims of domestic violence and sexual abuse. She has
become an idol in her own right for many in the city, cultivating a great
reputation.
As always, Mom is standing outside with her two kooikerhondje dogs,
waiting for my car to arrive. I notice that she cut her long, straight blonde
hair. She’s now styling it very short, but it suits her better like that.
“Mom!” I rush out of the car and hug her tight.
“Oh, my little angel,” replies Mom, kissing the top of my head. “You
look wonderful.”
“Thanks, Mom.”
“Let’s go inside. Anika, please take the luggage to Petra’s bedroom.”
“Hi, Anika.” I joyfully hug her like a sister.
“Petra, it’s so good to see you. Your mom wouldn’t stop complaining
how she missed you.”
Mom rolls her eyes.
“I missed Rotterdam so much. Mostly I missed you and Mom.”
“How was Rome?” asks Mom. “I’m dying to know everything. Let’s go
the tea room,” she adds, grasping my hand.
The tea room is our favorite place in the whole house—an elegant and
cozy living room where we can spend hours chatting about the most
random subjects while emptying countless teapots. In the winter, we usually
light a fire. Time always flies here. Unlike with Dad, I love to discuss
everything and nothing with Mom. She’s so open-minded, so liberal; the
conversations are so fluid, without filters. Along with Emma, Mom is one
of my most intimate confidants. While I’m recalling my summer internship
and the conference in Rome, I get the feeling Mom is particularly intrigued
about something.
“I recognize this pendant…” she rebukes, while stirring her tea.
I blush, touching it instinctively. “Alex and I are friends again,” I simply
reply. “I actually didn’t know he was from nobility.”
“Well, there is a lot about him and his family you don’t know...” It feels
like a hint. “But anyway, that’s great. I’m glad for you. He has always been
so kind and caring to you. I’m happy he’s back in your life.” Her tone and
face, though, say otherwise.
“Indeed, and he continues to be exactly the same.”
“So, tell me.” Mom leans closer to me. “Why are you glowing? You
look so radiant. I’ve never seen you like this before.”
“Well…” I bite my lip, undecided if I should tell her the truth or not.
“I’m in love, Mom,” I announce, taking a sip of my tea.
“This is wonderful news. Finally. I felt there was something going on.
You look happier, more vivid. So, who’s the lucky one?”
In fact, in seventeen years, I’ve never announced these words. It feels so
strange, yet so wonderful at the same time. “Well”—I clear my throat
—“I’m not sure if you’ll be too enthusiastic.”
“Why not? You drank your first glass of champagne with me. I’m quite
open-minded.” Mom sees me hesitating. “C’mon, we never keep secrets
from each other.”
And she’s right. “Very well.” I take a long breath, ready for World War
III. “It’s Alex...”
Mom’s face goes blank, then livid. “Alex? You mean, as in Alexander
Van Dieren?” I nod. “You must be kidding me! Petra, again? You know
perfectly well he’s your godfather and way too old for you. Forget this
nonsense, alright?”
I knew Mom wouldn’t approve. But I try to convince her anyway. “I do
really love him.”
“You are confusing love with attraction, my dear. I know he is very
good-looking and charming, but he is your father’s best friend and more
than twice your age.”
“He’s also my best friend. I trust him completely.”
“Petra.” Her tone’s more authoritative. “Promise me you won’t do
anything with him. I’m serious about this. Or else I’ll have to call Roy, and
you know how much I hate talking to your father.”
I sigh. “Why are you so against him?”
“Because you’re way too young!” she snarls, louder than usual. Mom
takes a deep breath and tries to remain calm. “Look, Columbia is around the
corner. You’ll find plenty of amazing, well-educated boys there, believe me.
Alexander should remain what he is—a friend. You should be glad he came
back after what you did.”
“That incident was ten years ago! I was seven. Now it’s different, I’m
turning eighte—”
“Exactly,” she barks abruptly. “Now it’s different. Now you can be
rational and realize he is not the right man for you.”
“So it’s only about the age difference?”
“Petra.” It seems like she’s about to lose her temper. “Van Dieren has
quite a reputation among women…”
“I know that. But with me he is different...”
“That’s what all his previous girlfriends thought! That they were
special, different. Look at Amanda, ten years in a relationship with him. Ten
years! Poor woman, she gave too much of herself. She always did what he
wanted, expecting one day maybe they would get engaged. And what did he
do? He dumped her.” She exhales loudly in annoyance. “Petra, you know
how much I want to see you happy, right? But promise me you’ll keep your
distance.” She reaches out, taking my hand and looking me straight in the
eyes. “I’m serious, my little angel. This man will only break your heart. I
know him much better than you do.”
There’s no possible way to change my mother’s mind on this. I let out a
sigh. “Alright. As you wish” feels like the right answer to give. I have no
intention whatsoever of doing so, but she could call Dad and reveal my
secret at any time. I feel so stupid and naive to have trusted her like that.
After all, Alex already disappeared for ten years—I can’t risk losing him
again.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 13
The club is dark, a string of red lights flickers above the immense dance
floor to match the vibrant and sensual beats. I’m sitting at a table with some
friends in a private area of the club. The atmosphere’s arousing, a group of
hot chicks in skin-tight dresses are shaking their asses to the DJ, gazing
here and there at me, craving some attention for their performance.
I keep scanning the dance floor for my next prey. But my heart instantly
freezes at the sight of a skinny figure in a white eyelet dress with a ribbon
wrapped around the waist, long black wavy hair, pale skin, big blue eyes,
and cherry lips. “Petra? What are you doing here?” I yell at her. She sees
me and starts running away, hiding herself among the crowd. How did she
even get in? Probably with that fake ID.
I leave my table in a hurry and search for her amid the many men and
women dancing. Ah, there she is. I hasten to follow the white dress. After
all, she’s the only one wearing white in this club. I find her leaving the
dance floor, running into a dark hallway. I speed up my pace and rush after
her, wondering where she’s heading. She disappears into a room, shutting
the door behind her. I shake my head.
Annoyed with her little game, I let out a breath and open the door. The
room is barely lit, empty, with just a round bed where Petra’s sitting on the
edge, staring innocently at me with her most angelic face—the one she
usually does to avoid being scolded. Hands in my pockets, I walk toward
her and stop right in front of her. She throws me a sweet little smile, looking
up at me. But I remain unsmiling, rigid. I glare steadily at her and ask,
“What are you doing in this club, Petra? You shouldn’t be here. You have to
go home.”
She giggles instead. I try hard to remain indifferent to such a cute sound
coming from her month. “Let me stay,” she begs in a low, tender voice,
reaching for my wrist with her left hand. Goddammit. She’s so adorable.
I hold her fingers, caressing them slowly, but I feel something different
at the touch. I glance down at them, and it’s enough to scare the hell out of
me. I take a deep breath and stare again, this time more attentively. Petra is
wearing an oval sapphire halo ring with a golden one below that. My jaw
drops. I recognize this ring!
“Petra, who gave you this?” I ask, looking intently at the engagement
ring.
She titters, her face beaming, and shakes her head in amusement. I
glance at my left hand and know the answer.
Before I can ask anything further, she lays down on the bed, pulling me
over her. I let my body cover hers. Lost in her big blue eyes, my lips spread
apart and my pulse becomes uncontrollable. I’ve never lain on a bed with
her before, but she seems far more comfortable than me.
“Do you love me?” she asks while unfastening my belt.
I widen my eyes in shock. Fuck! What’s happening? “Oh God...” I try to
recover from this madness. “Petra, I can’t do this.” But I’m so stunned by
all of this that I remain motionless. I can only stare at her as she hungrily
unzips my pants.
“There’s no one here, just us,” she reassures in a soft voice.
Her eyes meet mine again, looking for an answer to her question.
Lost in here gaze, my heartbeat is bouncing so fast and loud that I can
barely breathe, but despite it all…
“You know perfectly well I do.”
She wraps her hands around my neck, and her face glows with a smile
I’ve never seen before. “I love you too.”
I reach her mouth at that instant, devouring her lustily. The urge of my
desire to possess her is unbearable. I lift her dress, completely uncovering
her legs. I squeeze them tight. Her skin feels so smooth and delicate. I
spread them wider and notice she’s not wearing anything underneath. I
grow harder at the sight of her pussy; my mind’s going wild. I need to be
inside, to fill her completely, to give her the pleasure I imagined in Rome,
make her body sweat and tremble like she has never felt before.
I push my pants and boxers down, then nibble on her bottom lip, her
chin, before sucking her neck again.
“Ahhh…” she moans, lifting her pelvis. Damn. I hear her moaning. I
reach down, bring my cock to her opening, and thrust hurriedly inside. I
groan, feeling her for the very first time. She’s so drenched, so narrow, so
warm, my heart feels like exploding and my breath comes out in short
gasps. She squeals while I strike deeper. I have to shut my eyes at the
intensity of our pleasure, at the intensity of having her, her love, her moans
begging me to go faster and harder—she seems so used to the feel of me.
She’s so damn expressive, so liberated. “Ahh… Faster! Ahhh!” She cries
out while I’m pounding into her, in and out. My eyes drop to her mouth,
wide open, then to her flushed skin, all sweaty and messy… God, she’s so
beautiful with my cock inside. The view takes my breath away. At that
instant I feel the urge of my orgasm, and my strokes become more insistent
as I bang her as hard as I can. “Cum inside me,” she whispers. “Please, cum
inside…” she repeats in a dirty voice I’ve never heard before.
“Oh, fuck, Petra...” I’m totally drunk. Drunk on her. I shut my eyes at
the euphoria of the moment, give one last deep push, and, between heavy
groans, finish in her.
She reaches for my mouth and pins me with a long kiss while I remain
inside, enjoying her warmth.
Then we look at each other with the exact same tenderness and twinkle
as in Rome—it feels like nothing else matters. Just us. After all, I’m her
husband. And she is my wife.
I wake up with a jump, totally startled. I’m exhausted, sweaty, shaking
between grueling breaths. While sitting up in bed, I look around. My
bedroom is empty. There’s no one but me. I glance at the clock on the
nightstand. Four a.m. Jeez! I brush some strands of hair from my face, take
a deep breath in, and exhale. What a nightmare. I go to the bathroom and
take a quick, fresh shower. I grab new boxers and a pair of ripped jeans,
then go to the bar area in the living room. There I take a glass, three ice
cubes, and pour some Macallan. I haven’t smoked a cigarette in years.
Probably twenty or more. But I always have a pack hidden somewhere for
guests. I take one out, put the filter up to my lips, and light it. Taking the
first puff feels good. With my glass in hand and my cigarette between my
fingers, I drag myself to the terrace, pacing around while idly observing
skyscrapers and streetlights spread across the city. Even at four a.m.,
Manhattan is noisy and full of life. I need help. Urgently. I take another
inhale before throwing the cigarette away, head back inside, and start
searching for that business card. I find it on the hall table and add her
private number to my WhatsApp. It’s decided—I’ve got to be with this
Rafaela before Rio, before I can see Petra again.
Alone in my office, I’m happy the meeting with Singapore went well.
Focusing on work is vital to forgetting her. There’s one more thing I have to
do. I take out my iPhone and make a call. “Hi, Rafaela? Alexander Van
Dieren. How are you? Enjoying New York?” My face softens with a smile.
“Glad to hear it. Look, I’ve been thinking about our conversation from last
night…” I laugh at her words. “Exactly, how to keep ourselves young. What
do you think about having dinner tomorrow, eight p.m.?” Yesss. I clench my
fist in victory. “I’m glad to hear that. Perfect, I’ll text you the address. See
you soon, bye.” I hang up.
I can’t help but beam with joy. I’m finally getting my emotions and
feelings back in control.
Suddenly, I hear a knock at the door.
“Mr. Van Dieren? My apologies for the interruption. Andrew Sullivan is
here. He has a meeting with you at two p.m.”
I roll my eyes. “Sure.”
Andrew walks forward, stepping into my office.
“Mr. Sullivan.” I stand up from my chair and go to shake his hand.
“How are you doing today?”
“Very well, Mr. Van Dieren, thank you. And congrats on the meeting
with Singapore. I heard the negotiations are moving along well.”
“They are indeed. If everything goes well, we should sign the
acquisition by November twenty-fifth. It’ll be a big expansion.”
“I’m glad to hear. Um, I have here the reports from all the interns.” He
hands me a file. “I also put in my recommendations for hiring, in case you
are interested.”
“Great,” I reply, going back to my chair, my eyes already glued to the
first page.
Andrew sighs, feeling his presence is no longer required, and walks
with head down in the direction of the door. “Mr. Sullivan?”
“Yes?” Andrew spins on my voice.
“What do you think about hiring Jess?”
“What do you think of my choice?” I ask, seeing her face glow as she
savors her glass of Saint Emilion. “Was it worth letting the chef and
sommelier surprise us?”
She nods with a smile. “Very much so. It’s the first tasting menu I have
had that is actually healthy and not heavy.”
“Actually, it’s not really on the menu. Although I think they should add
it.” I take a sip from my glass. This wine is indeed fantastic. “So, what are
your secrets to keeping yourself so young? Might you share some with
me?”
She smiles deliciously at my question, wetting her lips, and move to sit
beside me. I can see enough of her cleavage to notice her black lace bra.
Then she leans closer to my ear. “Do you want me to show you?” she asks
with a sensual tone. But of course. I smile and nod. She presses her lips
against mine in a lingering kiss. And I’m very happy she does so. Finally, a
kiss from someone else; after all, the last lips I’d kissed were— “Can’t wait
to get to your apartment and show you the rest…” Rafaela whispers.
I grin, picturing the rest. “Let me help.” I call for the waiter and gesture
for the check. Afterward, I kiss her again, this time feeling her tongue
caressing mine longer.
Once the bill arrive, I want to cover it entirely, but when she insists we
split, I say, “In Rio, I’ll be your guest. You can invite me wherever you
want. But in New York, you are mine.” She smiles radiantly at my
wordplay.
My iPhone beeps. The driver has just arrived.
I hold her hand, and we go out to the street. I open the rear door, and we
get inside the black Rolls-Royce Phantom, which is waiting for us at the
curb. She seems quite amazed to find it has an opaque glass wall that can be
used either as a TV screen or to block off the front of the car. “I have never
seen this before.”
“You mean the isolation wall?” I ask, closing the door behind me.
The car starts moving, and I strip off my jacket.
“Yes.”
I notice she has already removed her coat—the view of her deep
cleavage makes it difficult to look elsewhere. “It’s actually soundproof—the
people in front can’t hear or see us. And with this intercom, I can
communicate with the driver.” She nods at me as I explain.
In a sudden move, Rafaela sits astride my lap, lifts her dress up, and
starts devouring my mouth lustily. I grab her ass and squeeze it tight. “Then
let’s enjoy it,” she murmurs between kisses.
This woman is fantastic. Her breath comes out short and loud. She
hurriedly unbuttons half of my white shirt, kissing my neck through the
open collar and fondling my chest.
I grab her waist and lie her down on the leather bench. I like to be on
top. I continue to devour her, but a flashback of that nightmare runs
instantly through my mind. I stop kissing her for a brief moment and
swallow hard. I reach for her lips again, but my heart tightens, knowing it’s
not hers I want. I feel so angry with myself. My body is not responding to
her presence, her kisses, or her touch. I focus my mouth on her neck, but it’s
neither her skin I want to suck, nor her perfume I want to inhale. Indeed,
there is not a trace of jasmine... I look back into her eyes. They are brown.
The car stops.
I know we’ve just arrived at my condo. “I’m sorry, Rafaela. Don’t take
this the wrong way, but…” How can I say I can’t bang her in the most
elegant and gentle way possible? “I think we should take things slowly.”
Perfect.
She gasps in surprise, caressing my face. “Oh, Alexander, a man like
you asking me to take things slowly? Wow, that’s a compliment.” Phew, she
likes it. “Why not? It’d make things even more exciting in Brazil…” She
gives me a wet kiss on the lips. “Well, see you in Rio, Mr. Van Dieren.”
I give her another one, but quicker, before I make my way out of the car.
“See you there, Rafaela,” I reply back, before closing the door on her.
Fuck! I don’t know what happened. Rafaela is a stunner; anyone would
die to bang her. I’ve never felt that powerless before. Was it because of that
stupid nightmare? Because of Petra? Whatever. It’s time for me to be back
in control—me, and only me, no one else. I’ve got to talk to Petra and tell
her we need to forget what happened in Rome. It was just a damned
mistake, for God’s sake! I know that only from that point, when the subject
is closed, will I be able to move on and completely enjoy Rafaela.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 14
Columbia has been challenging but rewarding. I didn’t expect to enjoy the
classes so much. I’ve made a nice group of friends—still wondering how
I’ve managed to be that sociable. We are known as the geek group of the
freshman class, since we spend most of our free time at the library. But I
couldn’t care less. I love everything about that library. It’s bigger than any
I’ve ever been before. With its high ceilings, majestic windows, and crystal
chandeliers, it offers an intimate and silent atmosphere. It feels like heaven
on earth! Furthermore, there are books about nearly every subject, enough
to satisfy my wildest curiosity.
Today’s no exception. I’m with my classmate Matthew, studying
financial economics and getting my course notes in order.
“Matthew,” I murmur.
“Yeah…”
“Do you have the notes about why an economy has fluctuations and
how they may be controlled? Mine are not that good.”
“Sure, here.” He gives me a dossier with all his notes about the topic.
“Thank you.” I read the first page. “Wow, they are so detailed. Where
did you get them?”
“From the book Financial Economics: A Simple Introduction. Did you
read it?”
I wince. “Oh, no, not yet. I’ve been busy reading others. Do you have
it?”
“Yep. Here.”
“Thanks. You’re my savior,” I praise, accepting the book and flipping
through the pages.
“You’re welcome.” Matthew ponders for a moment, looking intently at
me, then takes a deep breath. “We should go out someday…”
“Go out? Where?” Does he prefer to study in a coffee shop? “I like the
library. You prefer coffee shops?”
He lets out a chuckle, head shaking. “No, I meant going for dinner or
something.”
“Ah, I see…” I swallow hard. “I’m sorry, Matthew. You’re very nice,
but I’m in love with someone.”
“Oh, I didn’t know…” Matthew can’t hide his disappointment. “I never
saw you with anyone else apart from our group. Is he studying at
Columbia?”
“No, he is older.” Much older. “He’s already working.”
“Wow, now I understand why.” Matthew looks down thoughtfully.
“Does he know he is the luckiest man on earth?”
I blush at his question. “I don’t think so.”
“What do you mean?”
“Well, I don’t think he knows my feelings.”
“So, you are secretly in love with someone?”
I want to say no, but he’s right. And that's the embarrassing truth pinned
deep down in my heart. I’m secretly in love with Alexander Van Dieren. I
belong to him, but only in my dreams, in my fantasies, and in my mind. In
reality, he knows nothing about my feelings toward him. We didn’t talk
about it either. Since our kiss in Rome, Alex hasn’t said a word. Or texted.
Not even once! I obviously haven’t texted him either. Maybe that kiss
meant nothing to him. Just the result of too many glasses of wine. After all,
he’s known to be a heartbreaker. Heck, even Mom warned me. And who am
I? A totally inexperienced girl, the daughter of his best friend and business
associate, and ultimately, his goddaughter. But is it already all forgotten?
I’ve got to know. It’d be too risky to confront him at the wedding with Dad
around. We’ve got to meet right here in New York one last time before
leaving for Brazil.
Decision made, I take a deep breath, reach for my iPhone, open my
WhatsApp, and—
We need to talk before Rio. Are you free this afternoon?
My heart explodes, finally seeing a text from him! Looks like he knew
exactly what I had in mind. I smile radiantly. Yes, I’m really missing him.
“I’m sorry, Matthew. I have to go.”
There she is, already seated at a corner table, a straw between her lips
drinking a strawberry smoothie. She’s annoyingly beautiful like always,
wearing an open denim jacket, a pale-pink shirt underneath, her usual
skinny jeans, and a pair of white All-Stars. She hasn’t spotted me yet. She’s
looking away with a pensive stare and a cute little smile on her lips. Fuck.
She’s terrifying. More than anyone I’ve ever met. After all, she’s the only
one capable of waking me up at four o’clock in the morning, of making me
change schedules overnight and take a plane to Rome, of making my cock
powerless in front of stunners like Rafaela… I sigh. Yep. That little thing
over there dressed like a teenager. I take a deep breath, walk in her
direction, and sit down in front of her. I feel a sudden punch in my heart—
she’s still wearing my pendant. She smiles joyfully at me, but I don’t return
it. Her eyes are so bright and charming. Why is she so damn irresistible?
“I haven’t seen you in ages.” She sounds irritably sweet.
“Well, six weeks isn’t really ages,” I snap, my tone serious. “How’s
Columbia? Are you enjoying it?”
“Not bad, actually. Much better than I thought. We have exams before
Christmas, but Dad told me I could take a week off in December for a
birthday trip if I stay focused until then.” I can’t help but smile seeing her
face glowing, but I’ve got to talk to her. “Why are you so distant lately?
You didn’t say a word…We’re going to Rio next week, maybe we could—”
“Petra,” I interrupt, my voice heavy. I pause for a moment to find the
best words. “I want to apologize for what I did in Rome. I feel terrible. I
can’t sleep thinking about what I have done. The entire atmosphere and the
excess of wine made me lose my mind.” I take a deep breath. “Do you think
you can forget what happened?”
She lifts her eyebrows, and her lips spread apart as she looks intently at
me. “Would you like me to?”
I don’t want to give her my answer. I know it’ll only hurt her—me…
us? “I think it’s better for both of us that you do.”
“What about you, then?”
“I’m meeting a friend in Rio.” I feel my heart punishing me. “Her name
is Rafaela. She’s one of the bridesmaids… I just wanted you to be aware of
that. I’m sorry if I gave you the wrong impression.”
I see her eyes watering. She tilts her head back to stop her tears and
heaves a loud sigh filled with sorrow. “I see…” She sniffles. “Well,
Brazilian girls are a perfect distraction indeed…”
I hate to feel her disappointment and pain. I bring my chair closer to
hers, but I keep my hands to myself. She notices it. My gaze is also
different—colder, more distant and rigid.
“Petra, let’s be rational,” I begin. “I’m way too old for you, and your
dad will never approve of any relationship between us. We should remain
friends just like before. You deserve to meet an amazing young man at
Columbia. Someone who’s your—”
“You didn’t even try to talk to him,” she protests.
I remain speechless.
Her eyes drop to my hands resting on the table. She lets out a breath
before looking back at me. “So, you don’t have any feelings for me?”
Oh God. “You are like family, Petra. I love you as such, as a
goddaughter and friend. That’s it. I apologize for that night,” I repeat.
“Wow...” she sniffles, closing her eyes for an instant. “Well, we are not
together anyway, so don’t feel held back because of me.”
Despite the harshness of the moment, I smile. She gave me the answer I
needed to hear. “Can we remain friends?” I ask, but she doesn’t say a word.
She keeps looking at my hands. Before that kiss in Rome, I’d have already
interlaced my fingers with hers while caressing and kissing her knuckles.
But touching her will only make things worse. “I care so much about you,
Petra. I want to remain in your life.” You have no idea how much.
She nods painfully before our eyes interlock again. “I do care about you
too,” she mumbles.
Her eyes are red and wet. I feel the urge to hold her tight, to kiss her, to
tell her everything is going to be alright, but no. I don’t do any of it. It’s
better just to leave. The longer I stay, the worse it will be.
“Very well. Thank you for your understanding.” I glance at my watch.
“I have to go. Have a great day,” and I smile cordially.
Then I stand up, fasten the top button of my blazer, and go to the waiter
to settle the bill. Afterward, I simply leave.
I’m totally paralyzed, frozen by his words and attitude. He didn’t kiss me,
not even a hug or a simple friendly touch on the arm. Nothing. My hopes
and dreams have been totally smashed down by the cruel reality: we are not
meant to be together. I should’ve known better. And yet, despite it all, there
is nothing I’m more certain of than him.
I close my eyes, take a deep breath, and tilt my head back to prevent my
tears from falling here in the coffee shop. But my heart is already crying,
bleeding, devastated. Friendship is not enough, Alex. No. It’s not. That kiss
meant something. And not only for me. I know it meant something to him
too. I felt it. Still, here I am having to compromise my heart for the sake of
having him in my life. Oh, Petra, what have you done…
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 15
Despite the comfortable bed, I didn’t sleep well last night. I’ve been so
anxious at seeing Alex with his new girlfriend. I know it’ll be a big
challenge to see them together. I fear they’ll kiss each other shamelessly in
front of everyone. I thought about texting him and asking him not to, but
that would be worse. He can’t know I care so much about it.
I take a deep breath and look at my outfit one last time. I opted for a
light-pink chiffon dress, knee-length, with a ribbon wrapped around the
waist and a lace corset with scoop neck. I also decided to wear the off-white
pearls my father gave me a long time ago.
I hear knocking.
“Hi, Dad,” I greet him happily while opening the door.
“Wow. You want Anabela to be jealous?”
“Who?”
“The bride-to-be, Paulo’s fiancée.”
“Oh…”
“I’m joking. You look radiant.”
“Thank you. You look great too.”
He stares at my neck, his face intrigued. “I’m glad to see you’re wearing
the pearls I gave you. But…” he seems hesitant.
“But what?”
“Do you really need to wear your pendant with it?”
I instinctively touch it. “I won’t remove it.”
“Alright, I won’t insist. Shall we?”
Cipriani Restaurant is closed for a private event. More precisely, for the
welcoming reception of Mr. Marques and his future wife, Anabela, a native
Carioca. From what Dad told me, she’s a former real estate agent who’s
been with Paulo for eight years. It’s her first marriage, but not his. Mr.
Marques had been married previously and has twenty-year-old twins, Luiz
and Miguel, with his first wife.
As we enter, we see Paulo entertaining guests alongside his wonderful
thirty-two-year-old fiancée while the restaurant is quickly filling up. Oh, I
recognize him now. That’s the man who was with Alex at the Et Al lounge.
The atmosphere feels posh, selective. A bossa nova singer is crooning, and
her musicians are playing in the background. Some guests are already
seated at their tables, while others remain standing, glasses in hand,
laughing and eating blinis with smoked salmon and caviar. Children are
running around, and waiters are trying hard not to trip over them.
“Ah, Roy, Petra. So happy to see you guys.”
“Paulo. How are you?” greets Dad happily.
“Good morning, Mr. Marques. Congratulations on the occasion. It’s
really beautiful,” I add.
“Not as beautiful as you, Ms. Van Gatt. Let me introduce you to my
future wife, Anabela.”
“Hi, Anabela, I’m very glad to meet you. Can’t wait for tomorrow.”
“Many thanks, Ms. Van Gatt. It’s a pleasure to meet you too,” replies
Anabela, kissing my cheek.
“These are my twins, Luiz and Miguel, and this is Claudia, Miguel’s
girlfriend,” continues Paulo.
“Hi, nice to meet you all.” I smile and shake hands with all the three.
The twins look quite different. Miguel’s more athletic and taller with short
brown hair, while Luiz’s skinnier with longer hair and a more casual, less
polished look.
“Miguel, Luiz, Claudia, this is Petra Van Gatt, Roy’s daughter. I hope
you will be amiable enough to show her Copacabana after lunch—she
doesn’t know anyone here.”
“Are you seated with us?” asks Luiz.
I look around at the many tables. “Not sure…”
“There’s a seating chart at the entrance,” adds Claudia.
“Oh sure, I’m gonna go check.” I go to the entrance of the restaurant
and read the table seating chart. Each table is composed of nine guests. I’m
at the head table. I read more carefully the other names seated there: Paulo
and Anabela, Roy, Petra, Alex, Rafaela, Luiz, Miguel, and Claudia. No, no!
Terrible! I don’t want to spend the entire lunch with him and his new
girlfriend! But I suddenly remember Luiz, the single twin. He’s at my table.
Perfect! I’ll spend the entire lunch talking, laughing, and flirting with him.
Then, after the gathering, we’ll excuse ourselves and go to the beach.
Wonderful plan! Alex is definitely not expecting that.
I go over to my father, who’s happily talking with Anabela and the rest
of the group gathered near our table. “So, Anabela, I heard the wedding
tomorrow will be the most magical event ever held in Rio?”
“Oh.” She rolls her eyes. “You have no idea how stressful it’s been to
get everything done the way I wanted, Roy. We are renting the Parque Lage,
which has splendid views of Christ the Redeemer. You’ll love it. We’ve
prepared a very special fairy-tale setting.”
I swallow hard. Nervously hard. Alexander and Rafaela are standing at
the entrance looking at the table seating chart, holding hands, and wearing
matching styles. He’s sporting a light-blue linen blazer with a silk pocket
square, a white shirt open at the collar, and navy pants. She’s in a light-blue
sheath dress. Oh God, she’s really beautiful. I look discreetly at myself in
the mirror and sigh. Rafaela seems like an elegant and mature femme fatale,
and I? As Emma would say, I look like a girl going to the prom.
I feel them coming toward us, and before I can run away… “Alex!
Finally. You’re late,” shouts Paulo jokingly, giving him a friendly hug and a
clap on his back. “Rafaela, wonderful as always. My God, you both look
great.”
“A perfect couple,” says Anabela.
Ugh!
“Maybe they’re next in line,” teases Paulo.
Everyone bursts into laughter but me.
“My dear friends, now that we’re all here, let’s sit. Lunch will be served
in a minute.”
Dear Lord. I’ll need a lot of caipirinhas to handle this. Or at least one. I
know Dad is against me drinking alcohol, but maybe if I ask him in front of
everyone, he’d be less likely to decline. “Dad, can I order a caipirinha?
Everyone’s drinking one,” I dare to ask.
He swallows hard. He never thought I’d ask such a thing and seriously
considers the question.
“Oh, Roy, c’mon, let her have a drink. It’s totally legal here in Brazil,”
chides Rafaela.
While Alex gapes at her words, I instead smile joyfully at having found
an ally.
“I’m Rafaela Lima, by the way.” She shakes my hand. “Your godfather
told me a lot about you.” Seriously? Now I’m even more surprised.
“Really?” I shake my head in astonishment, looking at his unsmiling
and embarrassed face. “And when I thought he couldn’t care any less about
my existence…”
“Oh, not at all. In fact, your godfather was just telling me in the car that
—”
“You can have a drink, Petra,” interposes Alex. “I’m sure Roy’s fine
with it.”
Dad is left with no choice. “Exactly, one is alright.”
I smile victoriously. I order one and head over to sit beside Luiz. I
wonder what Alex said about me to Rafaela in the car. But I know he’ll
never tell me. It doesn’t matter anyway. I’ve got to get used to this new
reality. A reality in which Alex is touching and holding hands with another
woman besides me.
“So, Petra, what are you studying?”
Why on earth does she want to chat with me?
“Economics at Columbia University,” I reply back.
“Oh, wow. Ivy League. So, what’s the plan? Follow your dad’s path?”
“I wouldn’t mind. So far, I have my own art fund. And later I’d like to
focus on art dealership, growing the fund, leasing the artworks, opening a
gallery…”
“You already have your own fund? Impressive. And how old are you, if
I may ask? Twenty?”
“Seventeen,” corrects Dad, his face beaming with pride. “If Petra
continues like this, very soon we’ll see her on Forbes Thirty Under Thirty.
Hopefully, as the youngest listed. We are working hard to make it possible.
Right, Petra?”
I nod.
“Unbelievable,” exclaims Rafaela. “I never thought you were that
young.”
I hate to be the center of attention. I give her a polite smile, take a sip of
my caipirinha—which is way stronger than I thought—and focus on Luiz.
She’s been gone about four hours now. The golden hour is quickly
approaching in Copacabana. While the majority of guests have already left,
Paulo, Anabela, and their closest friends are now in beachwear spending the
rest of the afternoon by the pool and lounge. I glance once more at my
watch. I hear loud male laugher splashing in the water. It’s Luiz and
Miguel. They’ve returned from the beach. Claudia is with them, but not
Petra.
“Where is Petra?” I ask Claudia.
“She stayed on the beach to watch the sunset.”
Pfff, these guys are so foolish. How can they think it’s okay to leave her
alone when she doesn’t speak any Portuguese? I leave the hotel and cross
the street, and even though the beach is still crowded, I manage to find her
at a distance. She’s sitting on her beach towel near the waves, staring at the
horizon, her black hair still wet from the sea.
“Hey,” I greet, before sitting next to her on the tiny towel. She checks
me out top to bottom. She must’ve noticed that I changed clothes, now
wearing a half-open linen shirt, sleeves rolled up to my elbows, and dark-
blue Bermuda shorts. She just smiles. I glance at the horizon where she’s
staring, before looking back at her. “You know, the hotel provides
comfortable lounge chairs…”
“I’m fine,” she snaps.
But her melancholic face says otherwise. “What’s going on, Petra?”
“I’m just a bit down today,” she admits before taking a deep breath.
“Nothing to worry about. I’ll be fine for the wedding tomorrow. I won’t
disappoint anyone.”
Looking at her without touching her is even harder than I thought. I try
to focus on her words, but all I can see are her lips moving, begging to be
kissed. I try to look into her eyes instead, but she’s staring at the horizon,
not at me. I can smell her perfume and her jasmine hair. My heart is
thundering so loud, I hope she doesn’t pay any attention to it.
She’s sporting denim shorts for the first time. Her skinny legs look so
smooth that I wonder for a brief instant how it’d feel to caress them. Her
makeup has been wiped off; she looks so beautiful without it. Heck, even
her long salty hair fluttering in the breeze looks beautiful. I want so much to
lay her down, move my body on top of hers, and devour her mouth madly...
My mind goes wild as I think about removing her shorts, feeling her skin
against mine, touching her clit, and giving her the pleasure I’ve wanted to
since Rome. Then, eyes looking into eyes, I’d tell her how much I… Damn
it. I shut my eyes, forcing such thoughts out of my head and these stupid
feelings out of my heart. But it’s hard. So hard that I can barely breathe.
“Are you okay?”
I blink at her question.
My eyes finally lock with hers. C’mon, just tell her the truth. “Petra…
I…” Tell her. “I have to go. See you tomorrow at the wedding.”
I stand up and walk away. The pain of not possessing her is too much to
bear. She’s a terrible temptation, but worse than that, it’s not sexual, or at
least not entirely. It’s something deeper, more terrifying. Something I’ve got
no power or control over. Fuck. How did I let that happen?
I reach the pool again where Roy, Paulo, and Rafaela are happily
chatting and drinking caipirinhas.
“Hey, what’s going on? Are you alright?” asks Roy, seeing me.
“You should talk to Petra—she’s alone on the beach. I’m sure she is
feeling lonely.”
“Very well. I’ll be right back.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 16
It’s an evening wedding. I’m surprised to learn it’ll start only after sunset, at
six thirty p.m. But as I step out of the car, I look at the beautiful Parque
Lage, 148 acres of pure green scenery, with the famous Corcovado
Mountain and Christ the Redeemer in the background. The gardens are all
lit by soft lights, and a blanket of bright stars are slowly settling in. On the
roundabout, white flowers are floating on the waters of a large marble
fountain. Anabela was right—the setup for the wedding has blown everyone
away. Located just twenty minutes from Copacabana, the park has a
romantic story of its own, dating back to 1859 when Brazilian businessman
Henrique Lage decided to buy the land and build a replica of a perfect
Roman palazzo with sumptuous gardens in order to hold his own wedding
reception with his future wife, the Italian singer Gabriella Besanzoni.
The palazzo is right in front of me, just above the stairs, covered with a
white carpet and flowers on each side.
“Wow, Petra!” Luiz can’t contain his excitement. “You look like a
Hollywood actress from the fifties!”
I smile. Indeed, I’ve developed a love affair with retro fit-and-flare
dresses. They accentuate my waist, aren’t too revealing, and are long
enough for my taste. I’m wearing a light and dark sky-blue chiffon dress
with tulle underneath. I like how the colors match my blue eyes. A
hairstylist even did a chignon in my hair.
“Thank you, Luiz. You look great too.”
I greet Miguel and Claudia and am introduced to Norberto and his
girlfriend—which are both also in their early twenties.
All of a sudden, we hear the sound of a sports car engine approaching.
Ugh. Not surprisingly, it’s the gorgeous Rafaela and Alexander in a
dark-gray Maserati. What a pathetic show-off, I think, shaking my head.
They get out of the car, Alex hands the key to the valet, and then buttons
his black jacket. Damn. He looks hot as hell, wearing a satin-lapel black tux
—just like when I saw him at my father’s fifty-fifth birthday. I can’t help
but smile. He notices and smiles back.
Rafaela looks just as gorgeous wearing a red silk gown with some lace
floral motifs on the sides. I realize how busty she is. Her breasts look so
firm and round, I wonder if they’re natural or not. “Rafaela, you’re
strikingly beautiful!”
“Oh, Petra. Look who’s talking. You look like an angel!”
“You look just as divine,” I reply, climbing the stairs with them to the
entrance of the palazzo where the wedding will be held.
We are welcomed into a sumptuous patio—the main area of the
wedding. But we don’t go there. Instead, we cross the corridor and enter
into a ballroom where the religious ceremony will be held.
The room with high ceilings and chandeliers is also immersed in white
tones and flowers. A long dark-blue carpet down the aisle leads to the altar
at the end. I am seated beside Luiz and his brother.
The pastor is already standing in front, along with the groomsmen and
bridesmaids. The religious ceremony is intimate, with no more than family,
close friends, and relatives in attendance. A maximum of a hundred guests
now wait for Paulo and Anabela to arrive. The other two hundred guests are
expected only afterward.
The first processional song is a melodic solo piano. Everyone stands up
at the opening of the doors. We catch sight of Paulo, looking sharp and
radiant in a black tux. To my surprise, he’s escorted by his mother; arm in
arm they walk together down the aisle. Everyone claps and cheers at the
sight of them. He waves to the crowd, visibly emotional. I can’t help but
smile. He stands next to the alter and waits nervously, staring at the
entrance for Anabela, like the rest of us.
After a couple of impatient minutes, a few young girls and boys appear,
spreading white petals on the floor while a new piano melody plays.
Wow. Finally, catching everyone’s breath, the wonderful Anabela
emerges like an angel. I love her custom-made Dior off-the-shoulder lace
gown and the white bouquet she’s holding.
Paulo’s eyes twinkle at the sight of his future wife walking slowly down
the aisle, her father by her side. Looking around at everyone’s astonished
faces, I better understand what Dad meant yesterday at the beach. Indeed,
the couple in front of me are a powerful proof of love and commitment, no
matter the age difference.
My eyes dart unintentionally at Alex. A smile on his face, he’s looking
intently at Anabela and Paulo, now standing together in front of the altar.
The pastor asks us to sit, and the religious ceremony begins.
“I’d like to start by saying to everyone: do not delay happiness.” I raise
an eyebrow at the pastor’s speech. “Some people think happiness is only
attainable once they achieve something, like a promotion, a better job, a
house, kids… but no. Happiness doesn’t happen because of achievements.
Happiness is built and lived every single day of our lives when we are with
the ones we love and cherish. So don’t be afraid to love, my dear friends.
And do not be afraid to be happy.”
I didn’t expect the words of the pastor to be so deep and to resonate so
much with me, and apparently with the rest of the guests.
I look around at the very muted crowd. Claudia’s drying her tears, while
Miguel’s holding her hand tightly. I smile, letting out a sigh. Deep inside, I
wish Alex were sitting beside me and doing the same.
After the ceremony and a very long dinner, Mr. and Mrs. Marques finally
reach the dance floor to have their very first dance to the beautiful song
“Can’t Help Falling in Love” by Elvis Presley. They walk excitedly
together hand in hand to the patio. We follow closely behind, surrounding
them.
The newlyweds start slowly swaying together and singing the lyrics to
each other. Everyone keeps staring with eyes full of spark and emotion. I
love this song, a true classic. They couldn’t have chosen better. I’m in the
front of the line watching them and instinctively smile—Alex is standing
right behind me. I can recognize his scent from miles away.
“Do you believe in this?” I ask.
“In what?” He bends down slightly to get closer to my face.
“This, like marriage and stuff…” I reply, looking at the couple.
Alex wasn’t expecting such a question; he looks again at Paulo and
Anabela, pondering for a while. “Don’t let the divorce of your parents
prevent you from believing in it.”
But his answer doesn’t satisfy me. After all, he didn’t really answer my
question. “What about you, then? Why didn’t you marry Amanda? You
were together ten years.”
I hear nothing but a suppressed laugh. With a smile on his lips, he leans
closer to my ear and whispers, “Because my goddaughter forbade me to
marry anyone but her.”
We try hard not to burst into laughter.
My face beams with joy as I look him in the eye. I can’t help but wrap
my arms around his neck. “So, are you gonna propose to her, then?” I ask,
still teasing—or not.
“Ms. Van Gatt,” he murmurs quite close to my face, his thumb caressing
my cheek. My eyes dart down to his lips. Imploring to have them. Just kiss
me now, Alex. He does kiss me. But on my forehead. I close my eyes,
reveling in his touch. To my surprise, his kiss is long, laced with feelings
that squeeze my heart even more. Then I look at him with parted lips, but in
pain from the harsh reality—I might never have more than this. And as if he
could feel it, he hugs me tight. So tight that my pulse bounces intensely as I
nuzzle his neck. “Don’t ask questions you might not like the answer to,” he
finally replies in a low voice.
What does that even mean? Does he know my feelings? Does he know I
would have said yes? Oh, Alex, if you knew…
When he releases me, I can’t help but sigh, displeased with his answer.
Meanwhile, his attention shifts back to the dance floor.
Nevertheless, I try to find another plausible subject. “I heard you’ve got
a nice view from your villa…” I dare to mention, hoping he’ll somehow
invite me there.
“It’s nice, yes. But I’m sure you have a similar one.”
I feel a punch in my heart at his rejection and shame to have had such
futile hopes. After all, it’s our last night here in Rio. How stupid you are,
girl. He’s with Rafaela, not you.
At the end of the dance, everyone claps and whistles while the couple
moves away to let the guests enjoy the next song. The DJ changes to a more
inviting and sensual Brazilian vibe and puts on some kizomba.
Luiz grabs my hand abruptly. “Let’s dance!”
“I don’t know kizomba, Luiz!” I contest nervously, still troubled by
having been dragged down to the dance floor so fast. Luiz has been
drinking quite a lot over dinner, along his brother. No wonder he feels so
comfortable and confident enough to dance kizomba.
“It’s alright. Just let the music play, feel my movements, and let me
guide you.”
My heart keeps racing. I’ve never danced kizomba before. Everyone
around me is dancing, pinned to their partners. I don’t want to do such
sensual moves with Luiz, but I know Alex will be staring—or at least I
hope so. I nestle my body against his and follow his rhythm. I blush as he
brings my body even closer to his.
Despite being with Rafaela and Roy on a sofa in front of the dance floor,
the talk with Petra hasn’t left my mind. Her question either. So, are you
gonna propose to her, then?
Wake up, Alex. She was just joking. But damn. What if she really does
want to marry me? She’s turning eighteen in less than two months, after all.
A smile escapes as I think about an alternative reply to her question. What if
I do? Do you think she will say yes? Fuck. I should feel disgusted at the
thought of it, and yet I feel the contrary.
“Looks like your goddaughter is having fun,” murmurs Rafaela in my
ear. “We should do the same.”
I choke on my whiskey as I glance at the dance floor. I blink, my jaw
dropping in shock. I softly tap Roy’s shoulder. “Don’t you think she is
dancing way too close to him?”
“Relax. That’s how young folks dance nowadays,” Rafaela insists.
Roy can’t stop laughing. “You’ve become even more protective than
me, my dear friend.” He gives me a soft clap on the back. “Take it easy.”
I take another sip from my glass, but I can’t relax or take it easy, no.
“Do you want to dance?” asks Rafaela. I don’t pay attention. “Or maybe
we could go somewhere quieter…” she whispers. But I’m too busy staring
attentively at Luiz caressing Petra’s leg while she’s going down with him,
following the sensual rhythm of kizomba. Her cheeks are flushed, and her
lips twitch into a smile. Luiz holds her tightly by the waist, his mouth
dangerously close to hers. Damn, is she feeling pleasure dancing so close to
him? I realize at that moment the most terrifying thing ever, something that
scares the hell out of me: one day or another, Petra will do it with someone
—she’ll give herself to a man and find pleasure with him, a man that she
might even marry. Fuck. A man other than me. I let out a sigh, my heart
bleeding, and take another sip. You’re pathetic, man. But the whiskey is not
strong enough. As I look once more at the dance floor, trying to get used to
the cruel reality, I can’t help but feel revolted by it.
“I’m glad to see she’s enjoying Luiz’s company,” adds Rafaela before
taking a sip of her champagne.
“Pfff. She’s way out of his league,” I rebuke.
“Hey, I know Luiz. I don’t agree. I think he’s a fine young man.”
“I don’t like his intentions…” I mumble, emptying my glass.
“Oh, c’mon, she’s nearly eighteen. She also has the same intentions
with him.”
“You don’t know her.” And I hope the conversation ends here.
“Well, I know women. We have desires just like—”
“Can we move on?”
“Okay, fine, I’m sorry…” Rafaela sighs and crosses her arms, leaning
back on the sofa.
“Ah, finally! You guys are here,” exclaims Paulo, staring at us. “Look,
Globo TV would like to interview us. Are you guys available? It’s just for
ten minutes.”
“Sure.” Thank you, Paulo. I’m glad to leave this infernal view of the
dance floor, barely tolerable.
I glance at the dance floor, but she’s not there anymore. Luiz isn’t either. I
look at our table—empty. Only Rafaela is there chatting with a friend. My
heart tightens, picturing Petra and Luiz somewhere doing God knows what.
“Where’s Petra?”
Rafaela sighs and takes a sip from her glass. “She left with Luiz and his
friends.”
My heart skips a beat. “Left? What do you mean ‘left’?”
“I think they went to Corcovado Mountain. Luiz wants to show her the
view from Christ the Redeemer. How romantic, right?”
“What? Are you kidding? That road is perilous! There are no lights, and
it’s in the middle of nowhere. Those guys are totally wasted! Why did you
let them go?”
“Luiz and Miguel are adults,” she snaps.
“Not Petra.”
“Relax. She’ll be alright.”
“Who is driving?”
“Miguel, I think.”
“Oh shit!” I know the narrow, steep road to Christ the Redeemer
requires maximum concentration. Not only does the road twist and curve
with the altitude, but there are no lights whatsoever and no guardrails. A
simple distraction could be fatal.
“It’s alright, don’t worry. They know the road.”
“Rafaela, Miguel is drunk! I could hear him yelling from the gardens.
He’s been drinking nonstop since dinner. The road to reach the top is
dangerous. How can you ask me not to worry?”
Rafaela shakes her head, exhaling loudly. “You’re way too protective of
her. Those guys know how to handle alcohol. Let her have some fun. She
and Luiz seem to be very—”
“Can you shut up?” I snarl. “I told you how much she means to me. If
something happens, I’ll never forgive myself.”
I go outside to the terrace, and call Petra on her WhatsApp, but she
rejects it. I decide to text. Petra, please get out of the car. Those guys are
drunk and not trustworthy. The road is dangerous. Please stop. I’m picking
you up.
I see her typing, and in a few seconds, she replies back. Why do you
even care? Aren’t you busy? Just leave me alone.
I feel dazed by her hostility. I can’t understand why she’s so aggressive
toward me. Why would she put herself in such a dangerous situation? I try
to call her once more. But she again declines my call. I sigh, nervous. I
should go talk to Roy, but he’s still giving an interview with the TV channel
and flirting with female reporters. Unbelievable! He’s too busy to even
notice his own daughter left the wedding. I see only two options: either I
stay here and leave her alone with those guys, or I hit the road. My head
says option number one; my heart, option number two…
Fuck it. I head to the parking lot, get my car, and leave for Corcovado
Mountain, hoping I’ll convince her to stop.
I reach for her at that instant, starving to feel her lips on mine again. I can’t
hold myself back anymore. Or my heart. She belongs to me. She finally told
me.
But this time, I slip my tongue in her mouth, touching and playing with
hers. My body heat is arousing; my heartbeat loud and intense. My fingers
caress her jawline while I passionately devour her. I’ve never desired or
wanted someone as much as her. Afterward, I smile, looking steadily into
her big blue eyes, and in a low, tender voice, I tell her what I’ve known for
a long time. “I’m afraid I also love you, Ms. Van Gatt… and not in the way
I should.” I kiss her again, like I did in Rome, my heart bright and radiant,
and I hold her hand tight. “Let’s get out of here.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 17
I’ve never seen him in his underwear before—in fact, not even shirtless! He
is the one who is terrifying, and I am the one feeling intimidated. I decide to
turn my back, looking at the view before me while he’s undressing. I hear
him unzip his pants. My heart pounds faster with every beat.
The water splashes as he enters the pool. Oh God. My nerves are boiling
down in my stomach. He surprises me by coming up from behind, kissing
my shoulder. I turn again to wrap my arms around his neck. I try to focus on
his face, but my curiosity causes my eyes to dart down to his chest—his
skin sun-kissed and smooth, his pectorals toned and firm. And before I can
look further down, he moves to meet my lips, holding me by the waist. But
I feel him containing himself, keeping a safe distance between our pelvises.
While kissing him, I bring his hands up to the clasps of my bra. He
knows what I want. He looks down at my face, studying me. My lips are
spread apart, breathing in short gasps. His fingers slowly touch the closures
of my bra, taunting me for a few more seconds. I don’t say a word, but my
stare is begging him to remove the last piece of garment covering my tits.
He presses his lips against mine, and while devouring me, he finally
unclasps my bra, letting it fall to the water. Then he moves down to my
neck.
“Ahh…” I moan between heavy breaths, while his mouth is sucking my
skin like he did in Rome. My brain feels intoxicated, growing desperate to
feel more of him. He looks further down, this time shamelessly staring at
my untouched breasts, as he caresses them for the first time. My tits fit
perfectly in his palm. While he observes them attentively, his lips part in
excitement—I know he’s growing harder at every touch.
“You are so perfect,” he whispers, gently rubbing my nipple with his
thumb.
“Touch me,” I beg.
He doesn’t protest. He knows I’m desperate and soaking. He turns me
around, my back against his chest, my sight on the horizon.
“Do you like the view?” he whispers in my ear.
“Yes,” I breathe.
While his left hand is over my chest, his right one slides from my
stomach down to my pelvis. “Then you should enjoy it…” And without
waiting any longer, into my panties.
“Ahhh...” I moan at the feel of him caressing my clit. I lay the back of
my head on his shoulder, letting him possess me entirely. I hear him
groaning, his warm breath coming in short gasps just like mine. “Oh,
Alex...” Fuck. I’m so drenched. I want to touch him too, feel his erection
arching into my palm. I bring my hand up behind me, to the front of his
boxers.
But he stops me immediately. “Petra, if we go further, I won’t be able to
control myself.”
“Then don’t…” I turn to face him, wrap my arms around his neck and
kiss his lips. Then, almost with a hint of desperation, I whisper, “I want to
do it tonight. I want to feel you inside...”
He swallows hard. “I can’t do it tonight. I’m sorry.”
Needless to say, the air cools instantly. “Why? Why not?”
I see him hesitating, probably fearful I won’t like his answer. “I need to
talk to Roy first.”
“What?” My eyes open wide. “Are you kidding? I don’t need his
permission.” My heart and jaw drop at such an outdated attitude. “We don’t
need his permission.”
“Hey,” he murmurs, his fingers caressing my jawline. “Your father
needs to know about us. I love you too much to…” He breaks eye contact,
looking down, visibly embarrassed.
“To…?”
The words seem difficult for him to say. He blushes and swallows
nervously, finally meeting my eyes again… And I’m still waiting for an
answer!
“To take your virginity like this.” He lets out a sigh. “You might not
give much importance to it, but I do.”
“Of course, I do too. I was about to do it with the man I love. Until he
brought my dad into the equation...”
He smiles and tenderly kisses my forehead. “Just give me some time to
talk to him. I’ll make it right, I promise.”
His principles and loyalty toward my father couldn’t vex me more. I let
out a deep sigh of annoyance. Why does he have to be that like that? Dear
Lord. He has no idea how many times I’ve wished to be here alone with
him and feel him… But now I’ll have to wait because of Dad? Ugh! I press
my lips against his cheek, thinking about how my wild night has just been
ruined by his morals. “Can I at least sleep here tonight?”
“Sure, there are four bedrooms. You can pick whichever one you want.”
I put on my most innocent smile. “I meant, sleep with you.”
“I think it’s way too risky,” he asserts icily.
“I’m sure you can control yourself. Just sleep with me.”
“I can control myself, I’m not sure if you can control yourself, Ms. Van
Gatt.”
I let a cheeky giggle escape. “I promise I will.”
“Are you sure?” He furrows his brow, but I nod confidently at him.
“Very well. You just gave me your word, Ms. Van Gatt. I hope you can keep
it.”
I remove my soaked black panties, take down my chignon, and lie naked in
bed. My head is dizzy, maybe from the cachaça, maybe from his touch, his
kisses, maybe from everything in between. I can smell his scent on the
pillow. I smile, sniffing it. I shut my eyes, trying to cool down my
excitement. But my body is trembling. I’m so warm and horny at the idea
that I’m going to sleep with him.
He’s gone for a shower in the en suite bathroom. The sound of falling
water resonates in my ears quite sharply. I wonder what it’s like being in
there with him, lathering soap to wash his body, seeing him naked, touching
him, and… oh God, feeling him inside.
The water stops.
Silence.
Despite the lights being off, I can discern his shape emerging from the
bathroom, a white towel wrapped around his hips. I look for a few more
seconds but instantly shut my eyes at the sight of him staring in my
direction. If I pretend to be asleep, maybe he’ll come to bed naked. I know
the odds are low. I hear a drawer opening, and I look discreetly again.
He’s standing at the end of the room, right in front of the wardrobe and
close to the window, where the outdoor lights give a perfect view of his
back.
He lets the towel slip down.
I sigh, admiring his delicious body. For some, chocolate or cocaine are
their guiltiest pleasures, but for me, it’s him. His shoulders and back seem
tanner than usual, but as athletic, broad, and vigorous as always. My eyes
drift slowly down. I can see the tan lines on his butt. I blush. He doesn’t
know I’m staring anyway. I bite my bottom lip. Even his ass looks strong
and toned. Shit. Petra, cool down. I see him taking some garments from the
drawer. Indeed, he dresses in a white T-shirt and black boxers. Why so many
clothes on, Alexander? He’s moving toward me. I close my eyes tightly
again. His body slides beneath the bedsheets. My heartbeat’s thundering,
but I remain still, angelic. He moves closer. I feel his face incline toward
me. His lips slowly touch my cheek; they are smooth and wet.
“Good night, Petra,” he murmurs.
I reply with a mumble, contorting my body. I’m not into sleeping. Nope.
Not a tiny bit. But I wait for him to lie down, his head on the pillow.
The room quiet, I open my eyes and look timidly at him. He’s right next
to me, peacefully asleep. I sit up and, in a sudden move, lie on top of him,
slowly kissing his cheeks, nibbling his jawline… His eyes open wide in
surprise, but he doesn’t protest. Instead, he smiles tenderly at me. His gaze
lost in mine, I devour his lips passionately, pressing my tongue in his mouth
and playing joyfully with his. He caresses my lower back; his touch is so
warm that it makes my entire body shiver. He knows I’m naked. His clothes
will be our boundary. The boundary not to cross.
“I will control myself, trust me,” I whisper in his ear. He seems quite
anxious as I straddle him, kneeling above his cock. Oh my. I can already
feel him, so big and hard. “Ahhh...” I breathe louder.
His jaw drops, watching me while I’m mounted on him. He knows I can
feel him against my crotch. I start slowly moving on top of him, back and
forth. He shuts his eyes, and I hear him groaning.
“I want you so badly,” I murmur, humping him where he’s hard.
“You have no idea how much I want you too,” he replies, lifting his
torso up to reach me, to reach my lips. “I love you,” he whispers, while
pinning my chest against his. I wrap my legs around his waist. He holds me
tight and starts following my rhythm.
I’m dripping wet, sweating, craving more. I close my eyes at the
intensity of the pleasure. “Oh, Alex…” I drag some precious air into my
lungs. “I wish you could be inside me,” I whisper.
He moves to my lips, kissing them hurriedly, then to my neck, sucking
it hard.
“Take off your T-shirt,” I beg, already pushing the garment up.
“No. You promised.”
I grow desperate. “Just the T-shirt. I won’t go further.” He hesitates for
an instant then decides to obey, helping me take it off. I can’t help but sigh;
his pectorals are so striking, defined and firm. His skin is boiling, his chest
melting against my touch. I look a bit further down to his abs, so sculpted
and ripped. Oh dear… I’ve never seen any guy close to his shape. He’s
finally mine, and I’m sure to enjoy it. He bends down to my nipples,
sucking and licking them greedily. “Ahhh…” I run my fingers through his
wild hair as he gorges himself on my tits. “They are all yours,” I moan
again. It feels so good to have him here. Our sweaty bodies clasp together,
moving and arching in a melody where only we know the song. Between
panting breaths and like we’re making love, our strokes become more
insistent, hurried, moving faster and faster. “Ah… Ah!” I can’t hold it much
longer. “Cum on me,” I beg him.
He growls at my words, tightening his grip on me. I know at that
moment he wants to cum, and I want so much to feel his orgasm.
“Lie face down,” he instructs, pushing me off of his crotch. I obey, lying
on the bed, my face on his pillow. He sits astride me, kneeling below my
ass. His mouth traces a line of wet kisses from my neck down to my spine.
Oh my! I’m soaking, tilting my pelvis at his every touch. “Alex!” I gasp,
feeling his fingers rubbing around my clit. “Oooh,” I cry out. “Oh God!”
He pulls out his cock, touches himself briefly, and with a snarling sound
I’ve never heard before, he releases his warm orgasm on my back. I want to
tell him to rub it in and let it dry, but there’s no need—Alex does just that.
Afterward, I hear nothing but our heartbeats.
He collapses onto me.
I feel his exhausted breath near my ear. “Next time we’re in bed, I’ll
cum inside you,” he whispers.
It’s a special morning to me. A happy one. For the first time in my life, I
wake up next to him. Next to the man I love. He seems to have been awake
for a long time—working beside me on his MacBook, probably replying to
some emails. I smile—he’s wearing glasses again.
“Good morning.” He grins, seeing my timid blue eyes slowly open.
“I’m very proud of you. You kept your word.”
My face flushes at his words, and my lips twitch into a shy smile.
“Hmm… good morning…Well, now it’s your turn to keep yours.” I sit up
against the headboard. “When are you gonna talk to him?”
He removes his glasses and ponders for a few moments. “November
twenty-fifth,” he precisely replies. “We’re negotiating the acquisition of a
hedge fund based in Singapore. Once we sign, he’ll be more receptive.” He
puts his glasses back on, looking once again at his screen.
“What? That means I’m gonna have to wait over a month?” I snap in
outrage, my eyes and mouth wide open. “That’s a long time, you know…” I
reach for his neck, kissing it slowly to entice him. “On my side, I’m
perfectly fine doing it without his consent…”
“I know”—he briefly smooches my lips—“but I’m not. Call me old-
fashioned.”
“Pfff…” I cross my arms at his incorruptible values. “What if he doesn’t
accept?”
“He will.” I don’t know what he has in mind, but I trust him. He reaches
for my hand, brings it to his lips, and places a tender kiss on it. “I love you,
Ms. Van Gatt.”
I feel my heart enflame at his words, and I can’t help but blush. After
all, they are still so new to me. So unbelievably new.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 18
The first snow of winter has finally arrived in Manhattan, blanketing the
city in white. Winter has always been my favorite season. Everything is
more magical in winter, more beautiful, more pure, I think with a smile, my
pendant between my fingers. Exams are a month and a half away, and with
at least five books to read, it’s the perfect time to focus on them. But Alex is
all I can think about. His touch has always been different from any of my
previous encounters, more gentle, more mature, more protective and
confident. The pleasure he gave me in Rio was beyond anything I had ever
experienced before, and, unlike his predecessors, I trust him entirely,
blindly. But this seems quite normal to me. After all—and most importantly
—I’m terribly and profoundly in love with him. But Alex has made it clear
he won’t make love before talking to Dad, and despite my many attempts,
he seems to be as decided as ever. He asked me to focus on my studies, and
on my upcoming exams. He knows Dad will give me that week off for my
birthday if I spend the entire semester working hard. Maybe we could go
somewhere… I sigh. An entire week away, just him and me far away from
here. What a dream. I can picture what we—
“Ms. Van Gatt?” I blink at the voice and look back at Mrs. Chilnisky
standing right in front of me. “Might you tell us why governmental policies
are essential to ensure a healthy economy?”
I glance around. My classmates are all staring, waiting for an answer. I
swallow hard. I have absolutely no idea but decide to improvise. “I’m not
sure they are. After all, looking back through history, we can see many that
are quite harmful.”
The class nods at my reply, but Mrs. Chilnisky not so much. “We are
not here for a debate, Ms. Van Gatt. But since you feel inspired, I want a
dissertation on the subject on my desk next week. All sources cited and
credited.” I wince. “Next time be attentive in class, so you can avoid extra
work.”
We hear the bell ring. The class is finally over. I feel so angry and
disappointed with myself. After all, I’ve never been distracted in class to
the point of being caught.
“Girl, what was that?” teases Matthew. “You didn’t read the books I
texted you?”
“Hey. No, not yet,” I admit, feeling even more embarrassed now. “I’m
going to the library to prepare my dissertation on why I’ve got a big mouth
and say stupid things in class.”
We burst into laughter.
“I’ve missed that humor,” he replies, his face beaming with joy.
As we are walking to the door, I feel him hesitate. “You may join me if
you want.” He smiles, radiant. “We are friends, after all.”
It’s hard not to think about her, to resist her kisses, her laughter, her fondles.
She seems so innocent, and yet she’s given me more pleasure than any
woman before. Pleasure without penetration, without blow jobs, without
even touching me. But she doesn’t need to do any of that to make me sweat,
to make me lose my mind, and to make me cum. After all, I know it’s not
about sex, games, or anything like that. My heart is at her mercy. I trust her
entirely with it, even blindly. But strangely enough, I’m not afraid. It just
feels right. I picture something in my mind. Something that makes me smile
as I look at the financial audit, but it’s not because of the positive results.
“Well, looks like Monday we are finally good to sign,” I declare.
“Indeed,” replies Roy, attentively scanning the last details of the
contract. “We will need to go to Singapore following the acquisition, elect
the new board and new management, and meet with those government
officials who made the deal quite a bit easier.”
“I know.”
“We have to thank everyone who made this possible, and show them
our support,” adds Roy.
“I’m hosting a celebration at my estate following the signing. I thought
about doing it in a restaurant, or somewhere here in Manhattan, but inviting
them over will create a deeper bond.”
“That’s a wonderful idea. Indeed, we always need them on our side.”
“Exactly.” I take a sip of my water. “Roy,” I say assertively, “I need to
talk to you privately in my office after the celebration. Maria will escort
you.”
Roy raises both eyebrows. “What is it about?” He looks intently at me,
his eyes worried. “Don’t tell me you intend to move to Singapore and be the
new managing director?”
I shake my head in amusement. “No. It has nothing to do with work.”
“Personal?” He thinks further. “You and Rafaela?”
“No. We’re not together. She was just for fun.” But Roy doesn’t stop
there—he gets even more worried. “Are you sick?”
I can’t stop laughing. “Roy, relax. We’ll talk next week. I’m healthy,
I’m not leaving New York, and it’s not Rafaela. It’s all good. Now, if you
excuse me, I’ve got a meeting.” I stand up from my chair and give him a
soft pat on his shoulder.
“Very well…” He sighs in annoyance, knowing he’ll have to wait until
next week to find out. “In case I don’t see you again today, have a great
evening. And enjoy the weekend,” he says a bit louder as I leave his office.
The dinner has brought together the entire management division of Gatt-
Dieren Capital, the team from our new acquisition, the lawyers and auditors
who made it possible, and some government officials from Singapore. Alex
was right—everyone seems delighted to visit his estate. I’m as radiant as
ever, enjoying and savoring the moment, my eyes glittering as I think about
the big capital expansion and how 2020 will be an even more profitable
year. I’m on cloud nine. After a long dinner and a good amount of wine, I
continue chatting idly with Paulo, celebrating as if it’s New Year’s Eve.
After the lawyers, auditors, and other stakeholders steadily head back to
Manhattan, just our closest friends remain.
“You should have brought some of your Brazilian friends,” I tease
Paulo, already half tipsy.
“Indeed, now that work is over, I should call them over,” he replies.
“Mr. Van Gatt?” I turn at the sound of Maria’s voice. “Mr. Van Dieren
would like to talk to you in private. He is waiting for you in his office. May
I escort you?”
“Oh, thank you, Maria. Sure.” I take the last sip of my delicious
whiskey, a Balvenie fifty-year-old single malt opened specially for the
occasion.
I follow Maria at a nervous pace. After all, I don’t know what Alex has
on his mind or why he needs to see me in his office tonight to discuss it. We
usually talk everywhere—lounges, restaurants, bars—and why tonight?
Why right after the acquisition of the Singaporean hedge fund? I have no
idea, but I’ll soon find out. Maria knocks on his door then opens it. Alex’s
sitting on his high-back tufted chair. He has already removed his tie and
jacket, keeping only his waistcoat on, sleeves rolled up to his elbows, a
glass in hand. He smiles warmly, stands up, and walks toward me.
“Ah, Roy. Please come in. May I offer you a drink? I see yours is
empty.”
“Sure, you know me. Thank you.” He takes my glass and walks over to
the bar to prepare a new one.
It has been a while since I’ve been here. As I wait for him, my eyes
begin curiously darting around. I must admit, his office is of a rare, classic
beauty with cherrywood paneling, tufted light-brown leather chairs, and tall
windows with carmine-colored drapes. I love the welcoming fireplace on
my left and the high-standing bookshelves on my right. I wish my library
were this vast, but this must be a centuries-old collection inherited from his
family. Then I look up to the chandeliers and the dark coffered ceiling. “I
forgot how opulent this place was,” I note aloud.
Alex raises an eyebrow, glancing quickly around. “It’s okay,” he replies
without an ounce of enthusiasm.
He hands me the refilled glass and invites me to sit in one of the chairs
in front of his office desk.
I unbutton my jacket and take a seat. “Well, I’m listening.” My tone
comes out a bit broken and nervous. I take a gulp of my new drink as he
walks back to his chair. “You look quite serious. Is everything alright?” I
ask.
“Well…” He takes a deep breath, pondering for a moment, then leans
against the back of his chair. “It’s about your daughter.”
My eyes open wide in astonishment. Petra? I run through several
scenarios in my head. “Don’t tell me she did something bad. Is she okay? Is
it about Columbia? Does she not like it?”
He chuckles and shakes his head. “No. Petra is fine, and so far I think
she’s enjoying Columbia.”
I heave a quick sigh of relief. “So, what is it about? Everything has a
solution; you can trust me.”
“Roy.” He pauses, trying to find the best way to put it. “We have been
friends for over twenty years… and this is going to be the most difficult talk
I’ve ever had to have with you.”
My jaw drops instantly. “Now you’re scaring me.” I take another swig
of my whiskey—bigger than usual.
“Do you remember that day you asked me to spend more time with
Petra and take care of Emma?”
“Of course I do. And I owe you a big one.”
“Well, today is the day I’m asking you to return the favor,” he
continues.
“I see.” I take another sip, swallowing hard. “And what can I do for
you?”
Alex notices my glass is already empty. He stands up, takes it from me,
and goes to the bar again to refill it. “Here.” He hands me the new drink and
goes back to his chair. At this point, I wonder why is he giving me so much
whiskey. Is it for the sake of courtesy, or because of what he has to say?
“First, I want to tell you I never expected this to happen. And believe me, I
tried to fight hard, very hard, to avoid it. But we are just human, after all,
and I won’t disappear again.”
“Okay…” I take a drink, a failed attempt to calm myself down. “What
about getting to the point?”
He takes a deep breath, looking steadily at me, his face unreadable.
“Petra is in love with me.”
“What? Are you sure? Again? Oh God!” I sigh angrily. “Alexander, I
don’t know what to say. I’m so sorry for her behavior. I thought after ten
years she would be fine. What can I do?”
“Let me finish, Roy. Here’s the hardest part.” He takes a long sip from
his own glass and swallows hard. My heart begins thundering as I observe
him searching for the words. “I love her too, Roy, and not in the way I
should.”
“Oh dear Lord,” I shout before rubbing my eyelids. This is a nightmare,
right? That’s all it can be! I’m going to wake up in a moment, for sure. I try
to breathe slowly, dragging some precious air into my lungs.
“We spent the night together in Rio, but nothing serious happened, I
promise. I would never go further without talking to you first.”
THEY WHAT? I gasp. My heart freezes immediately at his words. I
blink many times, hoping to wake up, but I’m still here in his office. “This
is a joke, right? So, you brought me here to get my blessing before fucking
my daughter?” I yell, squeezing my glass so tightly that it breaks in my
hand. Blood starts oozing from the cut, my anger consuming me. I jump out
of the chair, knocking over a pile of papers that falls immediately to the
floor. I would’ve preferred to slap him in the face, but I start pacing around
instead. Needless to say, Alex seems glad to be sitting on the other side. “I
understand where your disappointment is coming from—”
“You are her godfather!” I shout at him. “My fucking best friend!
What’s wrong with you?” I close my eyes once more, trying to contain a
headache. “This can’t be possible! I’m… I…” I search for words, any
words. “I’m in shock, Alex. I’m sorry. I don’t know what to say. You broke
all the confidence I had in you. I trusted you! I trusted my daughter! How
could she do something like this to me? How could you do something like
this to me?” I ask, pointing a finger at him. “How could you let this
happen?”
“I silenced my feelings, and hers, for months, Roy. It’s not easy for us
either. While I cannot explain to you why Petra and I feel this way toward
each other, I can tell you one thing: one day or another, she’ll be with
someone. Either a random guy you know nothing about and who couldn’t
care less about you, or with someone you know and trust, who has the guts
to come here to talk to you first.” I huff loudly. This guy is surreal. “She’s
not a child anymore. She’s turning eighteen next week.”
“Please, tell me we’re not having this conversation. I’m so disgusted by
all of this.”
“I’m afraid we are, Roy.”
The room falls into a freezing silence. I’m blank, mute, totally
exasperated with his disgusting talk. Goddammit! “How can you even
imagine your life with her, huh?” I shake my head. “Twenty-three years’
age difference is a lot,” I snap, trying to keep my temper in check.
“I know it is. I thought about all of this,” he replies quietly, his face as
serene as usual. “I just want to make her happy.”
“What if she wants a serious relationship? Or even to get married?” I
ask, aiming to bring some common sense to his madness. “You’ve never
wanted to settle down with anyone! You know Petra is not like Amanda,
Rafaela, or your random encounters.”
“Roy,” his tone sounds heavier, more strident. “I didn’t bring you here
to talk only about my feelings toward your daughter…” My heart keeps
thundering, barely containing an imminent attack. “But also about my
intention to marry her.” I fall back into the chair, but my jaw and heart are
on the floor. I instantly reach for my chest at the feel of such a punch. I’m
paralyzed. Mute. Has he lost his mind or what? “I know she’s focused on
her exams and that we have Singapore coming up. Don’t worry, I won’t
propose now…” Oh fantastic! I feel so much better! “But I wanted to let
you know I intend to marry her.” He pauses for a beat. “Do I have your
blessing?”
I gasp again. The more he talks, the more I’m in shock. Alexander
wants to marry Petra? I feel like throwing up, fainting, dying, but I
swallow hard instead. “Unbelievable.” I take a much-needed breath. “This
is unbelievable, Alexander. We’ve never let any woman put our twenty
years of dear friendship and successful business relationship at stake, until
now with my own daughter!”
“Indeed,” he replies, his voice steady. “But Petra is not ‘any woman,’
and you know that.”
“It feels surreal!” I stand up again, roaming around. “You are gone for
ten years! Ten good years, for God’s sake!” I protest before exhaling all my
mixed emotions. “And what about that lifestyle of yours, huh? Does she
already know about it?”
“What? My relationship with Petra is totally different, Roy.”
“Answer my question,” I snarl.
“No, she doesn’t know.” He lets out a heavy sigh. “I can live without it.
But not without her.”
I raise an eyebrow suspiciously. “You can really live without you being
a… well, you?”
“For her, yes.”
I shake my head more in astonishment than anything else. I’d never
have done it for any woman in the world, not even Tess. After a brief
moment of silence, still assessing his request, I proceed. “You know if you
break her heart, I’ll have to hurt you, Alexander. And our friendship, our
businesses, everything we’ve built together will end, right?”
“I know. I wasn’t expecting otherwise.” He keeps looking me straight in
the eyes. “I won’t break her heart, Roy. I promise.”
“Alexander, I’ll repeat this one more time!” I warn. “You know what’s
at stake. You can still back out. No need to make promises. Are you sure
about this?”
“Roy, have I ever failed you?”
“Not once.”
“I’m sure about this.”
I nod thoughtfully and try to get used to this new reality. So Petra will
become… a noblewoman? Lady Petra? And my grandchildren will inherit
this place, the Van Dieren family’s office, title, assets, and mansions?
Damn, I understand now why he gave me so many glasses of whiskey.
“Well, I imagine you’ll have to talk to Margaret, then.”
He smiles victoriously, or at least halfway. “I know, and I might need
your help.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 19
As I step into the NoMad Bar, I understand why he’s chosen this place. The
bar is set in a nineteenth-century library with two floors connected by a
spiral staircase. He’s already seated, reading, an espresso on the table, still
wearing a suit and tie from the office. My heart always beats faster when he
is around.
“I’ve never been here before,” I say, sitting beside him, my eyes joyful
and a smile on my lips.
He closes his book, puts it on the table, and gives me an unexpected,
lingering kiss. My cheeks flush as I feel his warm lips pressed against mine.
He’s never kissed me in a public space before.
“I love you,” he whispers, looking in my eyes.
I smile and kiss him again. “I love you.”
“We’re going somewhere for your birthday,” he declares simply, taking
a sip of his coffee. “We’ll leave the evening of the fifth.”
My heart explodes like fireworks. “Going where?”
“It’s a surprise, Ms. Van Gatt.” He gives me a charming smile, his gaze
devouring mine. “It’s outside the state of New York. That’s all you need to
know.”
I instantly picture that moment in Rio where he told me, Next time we’re
in bed, I’ll cum inside you. Holy moly! I try to remain calm, but I start
feeling myself get dangerously wet. I blush looking down at my lap, and
tuck some hair behind my ear. Meanwhile, Alex keeps staring intently at
my face with a sly smile. Jeez! I bet he knows what I’m thinking.
My phone rings. It’s Emma. But I’m not sure if I can pick up the call
right now.
“Go ahead, Ms. Van Gatt.”
“You’ve got to stop reading my mind.” He chuckles as I put my iPhone
to my ear. “Hi, Ms. Hasenfratz. How are you doing?” I immediately glow,
hearing her voice. Alex reaches down for my other hand, shuts his eyes, and
starts placing wet kisses on my knuckles. “I’m so happy. Finally, you are
coming back. Of course, I’ll meet you as soon as you land,” I reply, my
eyes glued on his lips now rubbing against my fingers. I can feel his warm
breath while he’s kissing them, and the pleasure he is having while doing
so. I sigh loudly. This man drives me crazy. “You land tomorrow morning,
right? Perfect, I’ll meet you at your house then. Indeed. So much to catch
up on. See you tomorrow.”
I hang up with a big grin, my eyes sparkling, and I instantly embrace
him. “Emma is on her way back to New York.” I clap my hands. “I’m so
happy! She kept her word. She promised me she’d come for my birthday.” I
think something through. “What time do we leave New York?”
“At ten p.m.” He seems to be studying me with his stare. “You may
have a birthday dinner at her house, if you want.”
How did he know what I had in mind?
I stand up, floating on cloud nine. “I need to find a dress for my
birthday, then.”
“May I join you?”
I gasp at his question and raise an eyebrow. “You want to join me at a
vintage shop?”
“Why not?”
I smile radiantly. Is there anything about him not to like?
I usually go with Janine or Emma to this vintage shop. But never in a
thousand years did I expect to bring Alexander shopping with me. I love
this store. Despite shopping not being my favorite thing in the world, this
place is like traveling back in time—it feels much more special than those
soulless, overpriced, high-end brands that Emma loves. Here, they have
many different styles and shapes, but mainly my favorite: the fifties fit-and-
flare. Surprisingly enough, Alex seems to be in his element, scanning
attentively through the dresses, the shoes, the styles, and the lengths…
“I didn’t know you liked shopping,” I tease, and unlike him, I can’t
focus much on anything but him.
“I have three sisters. Believe me, I spent half of my life giving fashion
advice.”
I giggle. Alex is so lucky to have siblings. I would’ve loved receiving
advice from a brother or sister while growing up.
“Try this one,” he declares, putting a dress in front of me.
“This one? Really? It’s white.”
“And? White should look good on you, with your blue eyes and black
hair.”
“Alex, white is only for brides.”
“Of course not. You are so antiquated sometimes, Ms. Van Gatt. A lot of
girls wear white nowadays.” He glances around for the seller. “Miss, my
apologies. Could you kindly give me your thoughts on this dress?”
The woman leaves the counter and comes over. “Hello. Sure.”
“Do you think this white dress is only for brides?” he asks.
The sales consultant chuckles. “No, of course not. This is a normal
evening cocktail dress. Actually, it would look great on you, Miss.”
“See? Just try it on.”
I roll my eyes. “Fine…”
I’d already made up my mind not to wear white for the dinner at
Emma’s. But I’ll try it on for the sake of making him happy.
I take the dress and go to the fitting room, while Alex takes a seat on the
sofa in the middle of the shop.
After a good ten minutes, I fling the curtain wide open, and observing
myself in the big mirror, say, “It’s terrible! I look like a bride.”
“Let me see.” Alex stands up, moves closer to me, and smiles radiantly.
“You look amazing. A true angel.”
I lift an eyebrow and take a second look in the mirror, trying to find the
“amazingness” of it. The white lace fit-and-flare dress is knee-length, with a
rounded neck, a white satin ribbon wrapped around my waist, and lace half
sleeves. Okay, granted I don’t look that bad, but it’s definitely not suitable
for my birthday. “Alex, forget it. I’m not gonna wear this for my dinner at
Emma’s,” I snap, staring intently at him in the mirror.
He chuckles, shaking his head, then wraps his arms around my waist,
pinning his body against mine, and bends down to my ear. “This is not for
your dinner, Ms Van Gatt.” My heartbeat starts pounding hard at the feel of
his breath on my skin. “This is for us.” And my lips part in excitement
picturing an “us” where he’d undress me and touch me like only he knows
how. I’m speechless, eyes drawn to him in the mirror. “You won’t need
anything underneath, just this dress.” Oh God. My heart fluttering at his
words. I know why he wants white. This is meant to be worn before
actually making love, before giving myself entirely to him. Holy shit.
“It looks wonderful, Miss,” praises the seller. “Your friend was right to
choose it for you.”
I can’t stop laughing. “Thank you.” I wait for the seller to walk away,
then turn to face him and wrap my arms around his neck. I smile brightly.
“Alright, I’ll take it, then.” My eyes dart down to his lips and I kiss them
instantly. Not sure if the seller is watching or not, but I couldn’t care less.
He doesn’t hold back from me either. Instead, he grabs me by the
jawline and gives me another kiss, longer, deeper, more passionate, the type
of kiss that makes me want to rip his clothes off and have him right now in
this shop.
“Thank you,” he whispers.
I wonder if he’s thanking me for the dress, the kiss, or both. He takes a
deep breath to cool down and goes back through the store, eyes scanning
the hanging clothes.
“Do you need some more help?”
“Indeed. We’ll need another dress—this time a colorful one for her
birthday party.”
“Sure, we have several styles. This one would look great on her.” The
seller selects a black dress with embroidered pink roses. “I must say, it’s
great to see men involved like this. I wish my husband would do the same,
but he hates shopping.”
Alex smiles. “Ah, well, I’m very picky about clothing.”
Hudson Valley, November 30, 2019
I know it’ll happen during my birthday trip. Dad agreed to give me a week
off, and Alex told me we will go somewhere, “a surprise,” he added. My
white dress is ready, with matching heels too. I’ve read as much as I can
about everything in between. I’m totally shaved, and yet I feel as insecure
as ever. He’s been with so many mature and amazing women, has probably
tried everything and beyond, and I? Well, I’ve done absolutely nothing. I
decide to seek advice from an expert in the field, or at least the most
knowledgeable person I know.
“I need your help, Emma…” She suspiciously raises an eyebrow but
doesn’t say a word, waiting for me to finish my sentence. I take a deep
breath and announce, “I’m gonna do it for my birthday.”
“What? Really? With who?”
I smile seeing Emma so worried, her mouth and eyes wide open like
she’s just seen a ghost.
“Well…” I clear my throat. “You know who…” I smile at her, my
cheeks flushing, and she reads the answer in my gaze.
“Oh my God,” shouts Emma, figuring out. “Finally, my babygirl will
become a woman.” She takes a puff on her cigarette. “And you didn’t pick
just any fella…” She laughs even harder. “You’ve chose the most wanted
playboy in Manhattan.” And she continues guffawing. “Oh gosh, this is too
funny. For sure, he must be a great teacher.”
“Pfff. Stop it, Emma.” I giggle while pinching her. “I need your help,
really. I’m feeling so anxious; I have no idea what to do. I read a lot about it
online, I even watched some videos, but it seems way too technical…”
“Relax, babygirl. Why on earth do you even care? This is not an exam.
Or some business plan to pitch. He’s not gonna approve anything. Just
enjoy.”
“I know… But I don’t want to disappoint him. We’ll spend a whole
week together. I don’t want him to get bored of me…”
“Look, you won’t disappoint anyone, alright? Don’t feel shy, timid, or
even guilty about anything you will do. I know you grew up with a super-
strict father, but you have to remove any doubt from your mind. Take it as
an amazing experience.” I nod, thoughtful. “And you can’t be that naive,
right? You’ve already done some stuff, no?”
“Like what?”
“I don’t know… Have you ever touched a dick? With your hands or
mouth?”
“No…” I mumble, looking down.
“Oh gosh. Not even that? Okay…” Emma ponders further. “You’ve at
least seen one, right?” I shake my head. “Wow. Well, let’s get back to the
basics. Have you ever tried to cum on your own with your fingers?”
Oh yes, I’ve been thinking about him so many times. I nod. “But just
outside.”
Emma smiles, suppressing a laugh. Not sure if it’s because she expected
a yes or a no. “Okay, look, the most important thing is to stay curious.
Don’t put limits on your own desires. Explore him, you, and you’ll be just
fine. Let all your senses get involved. Let him know what you want, and
don’t keep things to yourself. If you want to be touched somewhere, tell
him; if you want to try something new, let him know. Just enjoy, babygirl!”
I smile. Emma has always known how to be reassuring. “And remember,
he’s most likely done everything, so I doubt any of your requests will shock
him,” she says, before taking another puff on her cigarette.
“I see…” I nod pensively. “Emma, may I ask you something?”
“Sure…”
“How was your first time? You never told me.”
“Well, you never asked me either.” She pauses, trying to put it in the
best words possible. “It was alright. I was drunk and horny as fuck, so I
don’t remember much. It was against a wall at a party. He didn’t know I’d
never done it before. I’ve always looked so mature and confident. It all
happened very fast.”
“So you didn’t enjoy it?”
“I was totally wasted. I didn’t even notice it was happening.” She
chuckles. “Just after he was inside, I realized…” I feel so sad for her, and
lay my hand on hers. “It’s alright, don’t worry, babygirl. I was fifteen or
so… Long time ago.” I admire her strength. Emma has always been so
strong and confident in any situation, even in her most vulnerable ones.
“Anyway, we’re here to talk about your first time, not mine. I’m super
happy for you. Remember, stay curious. And you will both love it.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 20
It’s snowing over the entire state of New York. I wake up this morning
missing Bali and the tropical weather. I don’t like the cold. I miss my
mornings by my private pool with the spectacular views to the jungle and
rice fields, taking a bike and riding up to my favorite coffee shop, where I’d
meet with nomadic young entrepreneurs from all over the world. It was
absolute freedom in every sense. I got a sleeve tattoo entirely covering my
right arm to my wrist, but since it’s been so cold here, my parents haven’t
seen it. Fortunately! They’d probably cut my monthly allowance in half if
they’d found out.
But I’m not in New York because of them, or because I’m missing
home. No. I’m in New York because I’m missing terribly the only person
I’ve ever cared for and loved—Petra. But Petra loves someone else. A man.
A terrible one. A playboy. Damn, how can she possibly be in love with
him? I can’t see how Petra, a young, sexually inexperienced woman can be
a long-term possibility for him. Most likely Van Dieren is having the time
of his life hanging out with such a young and innocent lady. My heart
pounds hard, picturing both of them. What if he’s just manipulating her for
the sake of taking her virginity? What if she’s his new favorite game, his
new fantasy?
I can’t figure out why Roy, such a protective father, would let his young
daughter be in the hands of that man. Something is missing from the
equation. Or is Roy also being manipulated? Deluded? After all, he knows
Alexander better than anyone else. How did Roy let this happen? I’m so
confused. Fuck. I wish I could have been around the last couple of months
to figure out what the hell is going on between them.
Well, no matter what, they have been very discreet. I checked the
current tabloids and gossip blogs, but didn’t find anything about the duo.
Not even a single picture! Nothing. Only a quick story that was written well
back in October about Alex spotted with a Brazilian woman at Asiate
restaurant and attending a pompous wedding in Rio. If reporters knew the
most wanted bachelor in Manhattan was in a relationship with his young
goddaughter, it would’ve been everywhere! But there’s very little about his
romantic life since October. My critical analysis leads me to a conclusion:
his relationship with Petra must’ve started then.
Holy shit. What I have in hand is quite a secret! I feel tempted to share
the story with Carol and Laura, but I can’t. Or even to share it anonymously
with the press, but no. I care too much about Petra.
I also have more important things to do with my time while here in New
York. I’ve decided to throw an amazing party like in the good old days.
Plus, Petra’s entrusted me with preparing a memorable dinner for her
eighteenth birthday before the party, right here on my estate. Babygirl is not
hard to please. Her only request is to start the dinner early, six p.m. at the
latest, and invite just close friends. Simple enough. I wonder if Van Dieren
will be attending…
I can’t help but chuckle. If I allow smartphones, everyone will be
sharing pictures and videos on social media, tabloids, and blogs, which
means it’ll be the first official event where they’re seen together. Would Van
Dieren want that? And Petra? Does she want to be seen with him? I don’t
know. But I’ll find out in four days. I step out of bed, take a shower, and get
fashionably ready. My iPhone in hand, I call my loyal squad, Carol and
Laura, to get their precious help.
It’s such a big contrast going from freezing and snowy Manhattan to humid
and hot Singapore. Even in the evening, the weather is still warm and
sticky. Despite being overly tired and jet-lagged, we’ve decided to have a
small celebration at the iconic LAVO Bar—the famous rooftop lounge
perched on Marina Bay Sands Tower with sumptuous views of the city.
After all, it’s our last night here. Since Paulo is on his way, Roy and I are
sitting at a table alone, patiently waiting for him. But Roy is still acting very
distant. With a pensive air, he takes a sip of his drink. Neither of us says a
word. Finally, he looks back at me and sighs. “It feels so weird, Alex. I
can’t even show you girls now.”
I burst into laughter. “Well, you’ll have plenty more for you.”
We finally see Paulo at the entrance, looking across the lounge for us.
Roy waves at him, quite happy.
I remain thoughtful. Maybe Roy is finding it weird, not because of my
relationship with Petra, but because he’s now the only bachelor among us.
And as the oldest, it might have some sort of impact on his ego.
“Hey, Paulo! How are you?” greets Roy, warmly shaking his hand,
followed by a pat on the back.
Paulo seems as excited as ever, just like a kid. He came from a dinner
with our new office’s financial team and is enjoying Singapore much more
than either of us. Paulo sits down beside Roy, glances around the lounge,
and claps his hands before rubbing them. “So, did you guys spot anything
good for tonight?”
I lift my eyebrows, my mouth opening wide, totally shocked by his
question. “You are married, Paulo.”
He chuckles. “Yeah, but we’re in Singapore, right? And what happens
in Singapore… stays in Singapore,” he replies joyfully.
Roy takes a sip from his glass, speechless.
But I shake my head, quite confused. “So why did you get married?”
“Have you seen my wife? How beautiful she is? I’m not young
anymore, but I still want to have a few more kids.” I can’t stop glaring at
him in disapproval, while he happily orders a gin. “Oh, relax, Van Dieren. I
got a great prenup, don’t worry. Look over there. Those three chicks.”
I let out a sigh. This guy will never change. I know Paulo’s wife,
Anabela. After all, I personally attended their wedding. I even saw them
looking into each other’s eyes, taking marriage vows, for God’s sake. And
yet here he is, looking for a one-night stand. I shake my head again. I’m
definitely not interested in witnessing any of this. “Well, I’m gonna get
some rest,” I snap, standing up.
“What? You can’t be serious. It’s only ten p.m. We need your blue eyes
to catch girls,” protests Paulo.
“I’m sure your credit cards will be enough. Gents, have a great one,
enjoy for me.”
Manhattan, December 5, 2019
Petra Van Gatt
“Happy birthday, Ms. Van Gatt,” Janine says as she steps into my bedroom.
My face beams with joy. I’m finally eighteen! An adult. “Thank you,
Janine. Good morning.”
Before I can say more, my iPhone starts ringing. It’s Mom requesting a
video call.
“Hi, Mom. How are you?”
She waves and smiles at me, glasses on, her short blonde hair
impeccably styled, sitting on the sofa. “Happy Birthday, my little angel. I
wanted to see you before you go. How are you doing? Officially an adult,
huh?”
I can’t help but giggle. “Indeed, officially one,” I reply. “Thank you for
the video call, Mom. I’m so happy to see you! You look great as always.”
“Thank you, sweetheart. Tell me, what are your plans for your birthday?
Is Emma doing something for you?”
“Yes, she is organizing a dinner.”
“That’s great. Who’s attending?” she asks.
“Just friends from Loyola and Columbia. It’s a small dinner.” I wonder
if Alex will manage to make it in time.
Mom smiles radiantly. “Very well, and who are these friends of yours
from Columbia?”
“Oh, well, we are known as the geek squad of the freshman class, as we
spend most of our time in the library. But it’s fine. I enjoy it.”
“Hmm, I see. Any cute boys?” I blush. I don’t know what to say. Should
I lie for the sake of pleasing her?
“Not really,” I ultimately reply. “But Matthew is nice. He’s one of my
closest friends at Columbia.” I’m happy with my response; it sounds like a
decent one. “I’ve been focused on my studies.”
“That’s good. Well done. Will I see you for Christmas? I miss you so
much.”
I smile. “I miss you, and Anika too. Of course, I’ll be back to Rotterdam
for Christmas.”
Mom looks as excited as ever. “So good to hear. I will prepare us an
amazing dinner for the twenty-fourth,”—she means Anika—“then we can
go together to Midnight Mass. Father Thomas is looking forward to seeing
you.”
I smile in return. Father Thomas is the one who baptized me. I haven’t
seen him in ages. “Sounds like a great plan, Mom. And what do you have in
mind for the twenty-fifth?”
“We can go to a dinner hosted by Carice, one of my closest friends. She
is an amazing lady, one of the lawyers that works with me at my nonprofit.”
“Oh! You have a nonprofit?”
“Well, I’ve already been working without any proper legal structure to
help as many women as I can, and since we’ve done tremendous work and
feel the need to expand, we’ve decided to get the paperwork done. You
know, I’ve seen some terrible injustices, Petra. Judges ruling against
restraining orders meant to protect women from their dangerous husbands,
just because there supposedly wasn’t enough evidence,” she confesses.
“Anyway, now it’s official. We’re hiring, and the team is growing.”
“I’m so proud of you, Mom. No wonder everyone loves you.”
“Thank you, my little angel. Well, I suppose you have classes very soon.
I won’t take anymore of your time. Have a great day. I love you so much.
Take good care of yourself and enjoy your dinner.”
After hanging up, I scroll down through the many WhatsApp birthday
wishes. I find Emma’s, my father’s, Matthew’s... I grin and click on the one
that matters the most: Happy Birthday, Ms. Van Gatt! I hope you slept well.
I’m missing you dearly. We are on our way back to NY. Can’t wait to see
you soon. A car will pick you up at 9 p.m. from Emma’s house. Don’t forget
to have your luggage ready. Love you, Alex. P.S. Bring warm clothes.
Holy moly. I decide to prepare my bags straightaway before heading to
campus. I have to make sure everything is ready. After all, I have little spare
time between my classes and the dinner. Plus, Emma’s house is still an hour
drive away.
I put the white dress and heels in my bag. Oh God. I suddenly realize
something. Tonight will be my last night as a virgin. I take a deep breath,
trying to calm my nerves.
“Ms. Van Gatt, are you alright?”
I blink at the sound of her voice. “Sure, Janine. I’m preparing my bags
for my birthday trip. I have to hurry up. It’s getting late.”
“Breakfast is served, Miss. Don’t leave before eating something.”
Janine’s about to leave, but I call her back. “Yes, Ms. Van Gatt?”
“Would you like to attend my birthday dinner tonight at Emma’s house?
It’d be an honor to have you there.” Janine smiles at me but remains
speechless. “It starts at six p.m. It’d truly mean a lot if you would join us.”
“Thank you so much, Miss, for your kind invitation. I… I don’t know
what to say…”
I walk toward her. “Hmm, a ‘yes’ would be great.”
We both smile at each other.
“Well, since you are so insistent, I gladly accept.”
I immediately hug her. “Oh, Janine, thank you for agreeing to come.” I
see some tears rolling down her face. After all, she has raised me almost
like her own daughter. “Janine, why are you crying?”
“Oh…” She sniffles. “I’m just so proud of the woman you’ve become.”
My smile gets wider. “Well, I was blessed to have someone as special as
you to raise me.”
She laughs while drying her tears.
I have just received the final list of Petra’s guests for dinner. I raise an
eyebrow. Sarah, Katrina, Janine, David, and Matthew. Only five people?
And what about Van Dieren? Will he come later? Which Janine is she
talking about? The maid? I don’t recognize the names of the two girls
either, and who are those guys? Damn! Petra has a new group of friends,
and I know nothing about them.
Since I have promised to host a small private dinner with only her
closest friends, I only add Carol and Laura. This will be the smallest
birthday dinner ever! For now, I need to make sure the table setting is ready
and that the playlist for the dinner is quiet and sophisticated, while the one
for after dinner is more commercial. On the food side, Petra has forgotten to
tell me how many vegetarians, vegans, and gluten-sensitive people are
among her guests. I have to know, and fast. Thanks for the list, babygirl, but
what about food preferences and allergies?
Fortunately, Petra doesn’t take long to reply back. Two vegetarians, one
vegan, two pescatarians, and one meat-eater—Janine. No one mentioned
allergies.
Why on earth does she have to bring Janine? It doesn’t make any sense.
Since my parents are away, I decide to wear a high-waisted black
miniskirt and an oversized white Dolce & Gabbana T-shirt to show off my
new tattoos. I put on some matte red lipstick, my favorite choker, my new
fourteen-carat gold septum piercing and my matching nose ring, fifteen
denier black tights, and my new Balenciaga black-and-gold ankle boots. I
smile, happy with my style.
It doesn’t take long to see the first cars pull up in front of my gates. Laura
and Carol are on time, as always. A couple of minutes later, I glance out
and see Petra. I rush to the main door to greet them. “Happy Birthday,
babygirl!” I scream, hugging her. “Oh, Janine, such a great surprise to see
you.”
“Thank you, Ms. Hasenfratz. Great to see you too.”
“How are you? You look amazing, Petra. Glowing like a godly
princess.” She looks so damn cute and yummy with her long wavy hair,
some strands clasped in the back with a ribbon, and her vintage fit-and-flare
dress. “Where are your friends?”
“They’re on their way.”
I take Petra by the arm, and we walk a few steps forward, away from
Janine. I murmur discreetly, “Where is Van Dieren?”
Petra looks around. Janine’s standing at the entrance chatting idly with
Carol and Laura. “On his way back from Singapore. I don’t think he’ll be
joining us. We are leaving tonight anyway.”
“Did he tell you where?”
“No, it’s a surprise. I just know it’s outside New York.”
We hear the doorbell ringing.
“Looks like your nerdy friends just arrived.” I open the door wide,
impatient to see who Petra’s new friends are.
She promptly introduces them to me. “Hi, guys! I’m so glad you made
it. This is Emma, my best friend. Emma, this is Katrina, Sarah, David, and
Matthew. My friends from Columbia.”
I can’t help but chuckle. They look so young and naive, just like Petra.
Matthew is the cutest—dark-blond hair, hazel eyes. He reminds me of
James. He’s also the most athletic… Truthfully, though, they all look quite
boring and plain. No wonder Petra prefers Van Dieren and me. “Well, let’s
head to the dinner table. I’m starving.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 21
After a flight that lasted over three hours, Alex and I have finally arrived in
the state of Colorado—more precisely, in the beautiful ski area of Aspen.
“I can’t believe it! I know this place,” I babble happily as I step into the
entryway of his winter residence—a private modern villa perched in the
high altitude with mountains all around, overlooking the lake and village
further down. “We used to come here during the winter! You taught me to
ski here, right?” I ask, barely containing my excitement.
He smiles as I explore further.
I cross the dining room and look through the high windows, staring
intently at the gardens, all covered in white. I smile at my childhood
memories. “We used to build snowmen right in front. Do you remember?” I
look to the sideboard beside me and gasp in surprise, taking in the framed
picture. “You still have a photo of us and our snowman?” I laugh hard. “Oh
God, you age so well. You look even better now. More adult.”
He chuckles, his eyes darting down to the picture, and he reaches out to
lift my chin. “You too,” he murmurs before kissing my lips. My heart parts
in fury with his kiss, craving to feel so much more of him, but I get a hold
of myself. “You know, I haven’t been here for at least ten years. This house
has been managed by an agency that rents it out all year long. The maid
must have decided to put this frame back in its original place when I told
her I’d be coming back with you.”
“Why haven’t you been here for so long?”
He smiles at my usual curiosity and caresses the long black strands of
my hair. “Too many memories, Ms. Van Gatt.” He plants a long, tender kiss
on my forehead. “Let me show you around.” Alex holds my hand and walks
me to one of the rooms, turning on the lights. “This used to be your
bedroom…” I step into the suite with a private bathroom and a terrace with
direct views to the lake and mountains. I smile, noticing that the porter put
my luggage here. “Not sure if you still want to sleep here though…” I
giggle at his comment. Alex remains leaning on the doorframe, hands in his
pockets, a contemplative smile on his face.
“Indeed, I prefer to stay in yours,” I reply, wrapping my arms around his
neck. “By the way, I’ve never seen it…”
A small smile settles on his mouth. “You’ll need to change first,” he
replies. I swallow nervously. “Meet me in the dining room once you are
ready.” Alex gives me a quick kiss on my lips and leaves the room, closing
the door behind him.
I feel my entire body shiver at his words. My hands are shaking as I
open the first suitcase to look for my dress. I take it out and lay it on the
bed. Then I rush to take a shower. Damn, I have never felt this nervous. My
body is trembling and sweating for no apparent reason. I spread some
perfume on my neck, my chest, and my wrists; put on my dress and
matching heels; brush my teeth once more; apply some cherry gloss on my
lips; and take a deep breath. You got this, Petra. You are an adult, and you
got this. I touch my pendant to calm myself down, smiling at my reflection
in the mirror.
As I slowly walk down the corridor, only my loud breaths and
heartbeats can be heard. Arriving in the dining room, I see a cozy, bright
fireplace. I just want to run over there and warm up my hands, but as I look
to my right, I find Alex sitting at the table, a bunch of papers in front of him
and in front of my empty seat, with a Montblanc pen in between. I notice
how he’s already removed his sweater, sporting a slim white shirt, sleeves
rolled up as always.
“Hey,” I timidly greet him.
His gaze goes instantly to my dress, the corners of his mouth lifted. His
eyes marvel, and he takes a sip of his whiskey. “Have a seat,” he replies
back.
Not what I was expecting, but I obey and sit in front of him. I glance
down at the papers. “What is this?”
“It’s a confidentiality agreement, Ms. Van Gatt.”
My heart skips a beat. I blink twice. “A what?”
“Read it over carefully. If you agree to it, kindly sign every page on the
bottom right corner, as well as the last one.”
I swallow hard, scared of such formality. I wasn’t expecting any of it.
This is very far from the romantic evening I had in mind. Nevertheless, I
start to read and realize his signatures are already there. I gasp in horror. “It
says you have the right to move forward with legal procedures if I say
anything?”
“No.” He takes the first page of the contract. “It says: ‘Both parties have
the right to move forward with legal procedures if there is a voluntary
breach of confidentiality intended to damage or to harm the reputation,
dignity, and the good name of the other.’ Petra, this is also in your own
interest. I’m protecting both of us. I care about your reputation. The world
is full of assholes who are ready to publish anything in the press to discredit
us.” He pauses. “You are eighteen now. Welcome to the adult world.”
“Alright,” I mutter. Then I take the pen lying between us, sign all the
pages on the line next to his signature, and give him back the contract.
“Here, Mr. Van Dieren.”
He scans through every single page to make sure I didn’t miss any.
“Thank you.” And he hands me a copy with all the pages already signed by
him. “Here, Ms. Van Gatt.”
I play his game and check every page thoroughly, while adding my own
signatures. “Very well. Thank you.” I cross my arms, dazed and confused at
his behavior. I wonder if he does this with every woman he sleeps with. Is
this really necessary? Doesn’t he trust me enough?
“You’re welcome.” He smiles and gets up from his chair, but I remain
seated, digesting such rigid procedure. As he stands behind me, I feel a
shiver down my entire spine at his presence, his fragrance, his warm breath.
But I don’t dare to look. Alex starts to fondle my long black hair, my neck,
my shoulders… until he bends down to my ear. “May I show you our
bedroom?” he whispers.
My heart skips a beat, and my breath comes out in short gasps. He has
this power over me. The power to make me shiver, sweat, nearly cum at his
words, at his question. He turns the palm of his hand up. I grasp it, stand up,
and follow him. We leave the dining room, crossing the hall, and go down
the corridor past my own bedroom until we finally reach, at the very end, a
closed door. I’m about to open it, but he stops me. “No shoes inside.” I
chuckle but remove them and place them alongside his.
Finally shoeless, I open the door and gasp in surprise at seeing the main
wall in front of me made entirely of glass. It overlooks the lake, the small
village down in the valley amid the mountains, and the ski runs, all lit with
a blanket of bright stars. A fireplace is burning in the corner. I walk closer
to the glass and admire the view. Unbelievable. It looks just like a painting.
With his body pressed against mine, Alex bends down to smell my
perfumed hair and slowly starts unzipping the back of my dress. I feel his
fingers removing the garment while he kisses my shoulders. I don’t dare to
move; I let him to discover me all over again.
My white dress falls on the floor.
His hands fondle my waist, my hips, my abdomen, just like an artist
touching his creation, until I feel him caressing my inner thighs. I’m getting
so drenched but decide to turn around and face him. After all, I have
something urgent to ask. “Can you make me a promise?”
“Tell me,” he murmurs with a tender smile.
“I want to try everything. No conditions, no fears, no holding back.”
He blinks at my request. I know he didn’t expect that. He swallows
hard, but I remain steadily looking at him. “Are you sure? You really want
to try everything?”
I nod and wrap my arms around his neck. “Yes, everything. I want to
become a woman, your woman.”
A smile of pride and satisfaction lights up his face. “I’m afraid to say,
Ms. Van Gatt, we’ll need much more than a week, then.”
I beam at him, my cheeks flushing. I have to look down and take a deep
breath before I can face his gaze again. “Well, we’ve got our entire lives,
don’t we?” His blue eyes devour mine, picturing exactly that.
“Indeed, we do.” He places a warm kiss on my lips. “I promise.”
Then he lifts me, my legs wrapping around his waist, and carries me to
his bed, laying me beneath him. I start unbuttoning his shirt, our eyes wide
open, savoring every single moment. He reaches for my hand and presses it
hard against his chest, letting me feel his heartbeat; his skin’s so warm and
smooth that I gasp. While he’s kissing me, I timidly move my hands down
to unfasten his belt. He watches me do so. I unzip his jeans and swallow
nervously as I see the hard bulge inside his black boxers. Wow. He removes
his pants completely, lifts up the bedsheets, and slides inside with me. Only
then, under the sheets, does he take off his boxers, but the white bed linen is
hiding everything. He lies on top of me once again; this time, though, I
know that he’s naked. He looks into my eyes, then at my face glowing by
the warm light of the fireplace.
“I have to tell you something…” he breathes.
I feel his vulnerability.
“Tell me,” I whisper.
But the words seem hard for him to get out. “I do really love you,
Petra.” That’s all he manages to say.
I chuckle and kiss him on the forehead. “I do really love you,
Alexander.” He’s about to reach for the nightstand to get a condom, but I
stop him. “It’s alright, I’m on the pill…”
“Are you sure?”
“Yes, don’t worry.” I wet my lips and whisper in his ear, “I want to feel
you, and only you, inside.”
He swallows hard.
As I kiss his mouth hungrily, I spread my legs apart, letting him know
I’m ready to give myself entirely to him. “I love you,” he murmurs once
more as he brings his cock to my opening.
“I love you too.” I’m about to reach to meet his lips when I suddenly
feel the first stroke between my legs. God! Now I understand why he didn’t
want me to see him. I feel him so thick and hard that I shiver. My entire
body tightening, I close my eyes, my mouth wide open to breathe. He
moves some strands away from my face then softly kisses my eyelids, my
cheek, my chin, my neck, and my lips again. He thrusts slowly into me, and
I gasp.
“It’s alright,” he whispers. “Give me your hand… Look at me.” I open
my eyes. “I will go very slowly, I promise. Squeeze my hand if you feel
pain.”
I nod timidly.
He plants a long, tender kiss on my forehead while pushing gently
inside. I open my thighs a bit more. I can feel my flesh giving away, my
hymen tearing... I squeeze his hand. He keeps his cock still and motionless,
while nuzzling and kissing my lips. I drag some precious air into my lungs,
trying to tame my loud, intense pulse. After feeling me calm, Alex forces
himself deeper.
“Ahh…” I moan again. From pain? Pleasure? Both? I can’t tell. He then
sucks my neck, sending my heart in a flurry of wild beats. Oh my... His
touch is so delicious, so protective, gentle, and warm. I bring his chest
down closer to mine, reveling in his body heat as much as I can. He
continues to push very slowly, nervous to hurt me by shoving farther, as he
knows I’m bleeding. “Ahh...” I have to feel him totally inside. “Deeper,” I
beg in a whisper.
He gets goose bumps just hearing my voice.
“Are you sure?” he asks again.
I smile as I look into his blue eyes. “Of course.”
Consumed by the desire to have her entirely, I support my upper body with
my hands so I can look at her tits and watch her moaning as I go deeper into
her. I notice her eyes are closed. But not mine. I don’t want to miss
anything. I feel her so warm and drenched, yet so narrow that it’s hard to
even move. Despite her tightness, I persist in pushing myself farther in. My
strokes remain gentle, yet firm and determined. I want so badly to be totally
inside, filling her completely. She wets her lips. I know she’s enjoying it—
she just brought her hands to my ass, squeezing and pressing it into her. I
pound her faster with shallow strokes as I feel myself totally immersed in
her little pussy, my thrusts becoming more insistent, more deliberate.
“Ahhh…” She looks so damn beautiful when she moans. I love to see
her sweaty face, her flushed cheeks, her parted lips panting for me... I still
can’t believe she is mine. God, she’s really here. Oddly enough, I can’t see
her being just my girlfriend. Every time I look at her, my dream tells me
I’m making love to my future wife. After all, I know I will marry her.
Somehow I always knew. And this is how, one day, I want to give her
children. Damn, why am I thinking about this now?
I lean down to her face, her lips, devouring her mouth hungrily. My
mind is so possessed, euphoric, wild. I know I can’t keep my orgasm back
much longer. My body’s trembling and sweating, my heartbeat suffocating.
I close my eyes tight, give a last deep push, and like it’s hurting me, let out
a groan before finishing in her. She smiles, feeling my warm cum pulsing
inside, then pulls me against her chest and moans in pleasure, carrying my
seed inside her for the very first time. “I don’t want to ever move from
here,” she breathes.
Damn, my heart has never pounded this insanely fast. “Do you like
feeling me inside?” I ask, my tone soft and barely audible.
“Oh, I love it. I wish I could stay here forever with you.”
I give her a tender kiss on her forehead and, looking into her eyes, I tell
her what I’d wanted to say earlier. “I’m all yours, Petra. And you’re all
mine. As long as we shall live, we’ll remain together.”
Her lips part in astonishment. “Oh, Alex.” She hugs me tight. “I love
you so much.”
As I come back to my senses, I continue to move slowly back and forth
inside her. I don’t want to leave just yet, and I know she likes my slow
movements.
“I want to taste you,” she demands.
My eyes open wide in shock. I can’t believe what I just heard. I want to
object, tell her it’s too soon, but no—I don’t protest. After all, I made her a
promise. No conditions, no fears, no holding back, I recall her saying. I take
a deep breath and exhale. Then I gently remove my cock from her and sit
back on my knees, while she props herself up on her elbows. With my two
hands, I hold her hair back and push her head forward, as she opens her
little mouth, tasting me for the first time. Holy shit. My cock’s still so
warm, firm, and wet from her. She starts caressing the tip with her lips, her
tongue, before taking me in. I close my eyes in pleasure and guilt, yet the
image of her delicate, innocent mouth sucking me is all I can see. I can feel
her enjoyment growing, her saliva, her warm breath, her moaning. Oh,
fuck... I decide to let myself go, lose control, and let her explore me further.
“Open more,” I murmur.
She obeys, and I gently force my cock deeper. She’s breathing quietly,
gorging herself on me like a succulent ice cream. I can feel myself near her
throat. I back off a bit and slowly push in and out of her mouth. I groan,
staring down at her, so satisfied. You’re so damn mine. “Oh, Petra…” I
moan, my eyes shut tight at the intensity of my gratification. She keeps
sucking me so eagerly that I wonder how long she’s wanted to do this.
“Ahh…” I release short, loud gasps, barely restraining another orgasm.
“Fuck…” I can’t hold it for much longer. “You gonna make me cum,” I
warn under my breath.
But she keeps devouring me, her mouth moving up and down, and I
know that’s what she wants.
I give a long-lasting grunt of pleasure and, before I can say anything,
she starts eagerly sucking the tip and swallowing my cum. Once I’m done, I
pull free, push her chin down to open her mouth, and check her throat—
there’s nothing left of me. Damn. Such a naughty little thing. I smile, quite
proud. “Good girl,” I say, kissing the top of her head.
Colorado winter mornings are always beautifully white but extremely cold.
I wake up to find our bed empty. I lean forward and contemplate the
massive white mountains of Aspen through the transparent glass. I can see
the small village further down and smoke curling into the sky from the
chimneys. I hear someone in the kitchen putting silverware on a tray. I
smile when I hear knocking.
“Good morning.”
I try to stand up to greet him, but the soreness stops me.
“I think it’s better you take breakfast in bed,” he says with a smile,
bringing in a tray with red fruit, matcha tea, avocado toast, and grilled
mushrooms.
“How do you know what I like for breakfast?”
“I know everything…” he teases. I blush as I look into his smile. It’s so
fucking charming and enticing, and makes me go wild at the sight of it.
Having him right here beside me feels surreal. Oh God. My heart is hotter
than my tea. While I’m drinking it, he softly kisses my shoulder. Then I feel
him watching me intently as I start eating my toast.
“I’m terribly in love with you,” he confesses. I swallow hard around my
bite of bread. “Thank you for yesterday. It was an incredible night.” He
reaches down and gives my hand a kiss.
“But after all, was it my first time or your first time?” I ask, teasing him.
“Well…” the corners of his mouth curve up, his stare lost in mine.
“Yesterday I made love to the woman I want to spend the rest of my life
with.” My heart explodes like fireworks. “So, it was also my first time.” I
kiss him hard on his lips, trying to contain my emotions. Those are the most
beautiful words I have ever heard him say.
I look him in the eye and speak my true feelings. “I want to spend a
lifetime of incredible days, and nights, with you, Alexander Van Dieren.”
Damn, my heart has never been so filled. She makes me fly without leaving
this bed. I feel a sudden urge to taste her. To make her cum in my mouth. I
remove the tray from the bed, lay down over her body, and start kissing her
lips. I feel myself desiring her all over again. I move my mouth slowly
down to her chin, her neck. Then I stop to lick her tits, her delicious pink
nipples, sucking them wetly. She moans with pleasure and runs her fingers
in my hair. The simple sounds coming from her mouth make me see stars
and grow hard. My head moves slowly further down to her belly. I squeeze
her waist while kissing her pelvis. She moans louder, her body wriggling
nervously. She shivers as I delicately push open her thighs, kissing the
insides of them.
“Oh gosh!” I hear her saying when I move down to taste her. Her body
instantly bows. “Alex…” she gasps. But I proceed nevertheless, kissing and
soaking her clit with my tongue, my saliva. I feel my brain intoxicated with
dopamine. Her pussy tastes so sweet that it makes me go wild. I hear her
moan again. Her breath is loud, her body trembling with every touch. She
doesn’t realize the more she moans, the more it turns me on and the more I
want to fuck her. I know that’s what she wants. But I’m not going to do it.
First, I want to feel her at my mercy, tormented by desire.
“I need you inside,” she begs.
“Petra, you are very fragile, we should take it easy…”
“I don’t care, I need to feel you.”
But I ignore her and continue eating her out.
“Alex! I need to feel you,” she repeats louder, her tone more insistent.
I don’t protest further. Fuck, she’s too stubborn. I remove my boxers
quickly. Leaning up on my knees, I start rubbing her clit with my cock. “Is
this what you want inside?” I ask with a roguish smile as I observe her
pelvis lifting, her mouth wide open, her body so needy for me.
“Yes, come inside,” she replies between panting breaths.
But I keep teasing her with my tip. “And why should I?”
“Because you are driving me crazy!”
“Are you mine?”
“All yours.”
“For how long?”
“Forever,” she nearly yells, craving her reward.
I spread her legs further and decide she is ready to get pounded again. I
alleviate her torments, thrusting straight and deep. Damn, I forgot how
narrow her little pussy is. “Did I hurt you?” I ask, instantly worried.
“No, keep going…” she breathes.
I heave a sigh of relief, but remain cautious nevertheless, pushing more
gently. “You feel so good, Petra.”
She moans at me in reply. Then she bends her knees, supporting her ass
with her arms to keep up with my rhythm. Despite her bleeding yesterday,
she seems to be enjoying every single stroke.
It’s so hard to stop. The more we make love, the more desperate I am to feel
him all over again. My body, my mind, my soul, my heart, everything is so
addicted to him. We’ve spent countless hours in bed, yet time feels
meaningless. Hours are just seconds. He’s perfect to me. He knows how to
touch me so well, how to make me tremble, how to make me cum. After all,
I’m not making love to a random guy, no, but to the man I will eventually
marry. My heart always knew I would.
We’re resting in bed, cuddling and savoring the peaceful silence of the
mountains. The last sunlight casting through the room makes everything
even more sensual and mellow. His tongue is playing around my breast—he
loves to see my nipples get hard at his touch—while my fingers are lost in
his wild hair.
“We should have supper. Aren’t you hungry?” he asks, looking up at
me.
“Indeed, I’m starving.” I make it sound like a naughty hint, but he
ignores it.
“Should I order food, or would you like to try that fine-dining restaurant
down in the village?”
My cheeks flush, and I smile softly. “I don’t think I’ll even be able to
sit…” I confess.
“Really? That’s amusing…” He leans toward my face, close enough to
make me feel even more drenched. “What are you feeling?”
“Well,” I start, clearing my throat. “It’s hard to explain. It’s as if my
pussy has been violently used.” We burst into laughter. “But it’s a good
feeling. She misses you already…” I insinuate while I nibble his bottom lip.
“Petra, I don’t want to have to take you to the doctor tomorrow because
you are crying in pain. Today was already too much. You were still
bleeding.”
But I give him a cheeky, confident smile. One he’s never seen before.
“You know…” I bite my lip. “There is another hole you haven’t yet
explored…”
He gasps upon hearing this, and gets up from the bed at light speed.
“Forget it, young lady. Way too soon to do that.”
“Why? Why not?”
“It’s…” He tries to find the words as he dresses in boxers and jeans.
“Much more painful…” He ultimately replies. “You are too young to even
think about it.”
I frown and shake my head, annoyed. I hate when he brings up my age.
Such a lame excuse. “I’m sure with you I will be fine.” I devour him with
my stare and I can’t help but smile—I love seeing him uncomfortable,
vulnerable, embarrassed, lost…
“You’re being very naughty.” He briefly kisses my lips. Does that mean
he likes it? “I’m ordering dinner—you have barely eaten anything today.”
With his iPhone in hand, he leaves the room to make a phone call and order
Italian. He knows I love Italian food. He comes back to find me still naked
lying in bed. “Dinner should arrive within thirty minutes, Ms. Van Gatt. I’m
going to shower. Pay attention to the doorbell.”
“I’ll go with you,” I declare, standing up.
He rolls his eyes. “With one condition: you have to behave. Otherwise I
go alone.”
“Pfff… Fine.”
He turns the shower on. The water is so warm it starts evaporating. I step
inside first. It’s slightly warmer than what I’m used to. I feel the first drops
soaking my hair, my face, and my body. I shut my eyes, enjoying the heat. I
hear him coming in from behind. He wraps his arms around my chest,
bending just enough to place a kiss on my shoulder. I can’t help but lay my
head back against him. He squeezes the tube to pour some shower gel in his
palm, then starts gently rubbing circles over my tits to form a lather.
While he’s cleaning me, I grind my ass against his cock, provoking him.
I bite my bottom lip in guilt and pleasure, feeling him. Oh... I can feel his
heart pounding so damn hard and his warmth invading my neck.
The idea she wants to try that hole is driving me crazy, but I’m determined
to contain myself. She’s too young for that. I focus on cleaning her belly,
ignoring her little game. I need more gel, but instead I feel her hand
reaching for mine. She takes my middle finger, opens her mouth, and sucks
on it. Dear Lord. My entire body shivers. My lips spread apart as I feel my
finger in her warm mouth. Fuck, she’s such a naughty temptation.
“Try…” she timidly mutters.
Damn, I know exactly what she wants. After taking a much-needed
breath, I decide to obey, bending her over, and she braces her forearms
against the wall of the shower. I look down between her ass, and there it is.
The holy one. I start to gently caress the entrance. My lips part in
excitement. I feel my cock growing as I touch her, and her breathing gets
louder. She then starts moving her ass around my finger, and I rub it
between her movements. Damn, the simple fact that I’m exploring this part
of her body makes me go wild. She moans with pleasure, and I’m getting
fucking horny, but I know I’m not the only one—my finger naturally enters
on his own. I gasp, looking down.
“It’s inside?” She knows perfectly well it is.
“Yes, now come here.” I grip her neck, forcing her to stand. I feel my
finger going even deeper as she tries to stay upright. I suck her skin
between deep kisses. “Does it hurt?”
“No…” she moans, rubbing the back of her head against my shoulder. I
slowly thrust my finger deeper, my mouth wide open in awe. I continue to
push in and out. Fuck, she’s so tight. I hear her whimpering louder, more
often. She starts following my rhythm with her ass. “Don’t stop…” she
breathes as I go faster.
I swallow and shut my eyes to not lose control of myself. Yet, my
cock’s begging to get inside, to give her what she wants. But I have to
resist. I never expected her to enjoy this so much and be so comfortable
with it. I start to understand better the reason she asked me to make that
promise, the meaning of her words to “try everything.” Yep, Ms. Van Gatt is
that curious. Burning with desire to challenge her further, I bring my mouth
closer to her ear and murmur, “Do you think Ms. Van Gatt can handle a
second finger?”
She moans at my question, speeding up her movements. “Ms. Van Gatt
can handle much bigger,” she replies bluntly.
Holy shit. How can she switch from an innocent girl to a delicious slut
like that? I know she wants me to lose control, and I love her for that. I take
a deep breath and bend her over again. While keeping my middle finger
inside and remaining motionless, I delicately add my index finger to her
entrance. Her body contorts at my touch. She moans, excited, scared, weak,
impatient. I trace a line of kisses on her back, and while rubbing my finger
at the entrance, I feel her ready to welcome it inside. I’ll go slower with this
one—I don’t want to hurt her. I wet my lips and realize she’s touching her
clit to keep up with the challenge. I fondle her tits with my other hand and
thrust my index finger deeper. She gasps, whines briefly, bites her lip, and
continues to breathe out, while rubbing her clit even faster. Despite being
harder than she thought, I know she can handle it. I shut my eyes and can’t
help but picture something other than my two fingers inside her ass. Fuck.
She whimpers as I push deeper, now moving in and out. And the more I do
it, the more I feel the urge to cum. I gently remove my fingers from her,
putting them into my mouth, and suck them. Then I touch myself while
caressing her back still bent before me… Oh Petra, you’re my little slut,
aren’t you? I can’t help but groan loudly and cum on her skin, just like I did
in Rio.
“Was it painful?” I ask.
She stands up, turns to me, smiling radiantly, and wraps her arms
around my neck. “No, it was so good…”
I smile with pride before pressing my lips against hers. “Not sure if you
know, Ms. Van Gatt, but someone has been ringing the door for five
minutes. I need to go.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 22
Alex decided it was time to leave the house and get some exercise, but this
time on the ski slopes. I haven’t been skiing for quite a while, but I do recall
the basics. We rent some gear and hit the smallest and easiest ones first.
While I feel like a World Cup champion on the green circle as I master
these slopes, Alex acts like he’s on the bunny slopes. “Petra, let’s hit the
runs on top. This is just too damned boring!”
But I joyfully protest while going down a short slide. “I love this run!
Didn’t fall, not even once!”
“Well, of course. This is just for kids to get started.”
He takes a quick slide down to where I am, in an attempt to convince
me further. But once he reaches me, he suddenly becomes mute.
Alexander Van Dieren
Why did we even leave the house? Her mouth can do so many better things
than talk about skiing. Before I can press my lips against hers, I remember
that Aspen is full of New Yorkers. I have just spotted two hedge fund
managers with their kids. Most of my entourage usually come here during
this time of year with their families, and mainly to this run to play with their
children and teach them some moves before hitting the bigger ones. I take a
deep breath and try to calm my starving desire to kiss her. “Let’s hit the big
ones now. I’m sure you’ll be alright. If you fall, you know how to stand
up.”
Petra rolls her eyes but follows me nonetheless to the cable cars. We
take a gondola and go straight to the top. The view from the ride is even
more impressive. Looking through the glass window, Petra contemplates
with a twinkle in her eye the magnificent mountains surrounding us, the fir
trees spread across the slopes, the skiers below looking tiny… She looks
back at me. I’m also enjoying the view: her.
I bend my head slightly down and kiss her glossy lips. They taste like I
predicted—cherry. My heart pounds faster with every touch—a reminder
how blessed I am. We communicate with smiles and a sparkle in our eyes.
She nestles her head on my shoulder as we wait to arrive. I smile before
kissing her forehead. “Did I tell you how much I love you today?”
She giggles at my question. “At least three times—the first in bed, the
second at breakfast, and the third when we left home…”
“Well, you can add a fourth to your list, then.” I kiss her once more.
“You have no idea how much I love you, Ms. Van Gatt.”
“I’m getting a slight idea.”
I grin looking at the new run in front. “Here we are. Let’s have some
fun.”
Mr. Van Dieren’s finally in his element, sliding at full speed down the black
diamond run. And I’m frightened as hell! My body is paralyzed as I look
down to the steep slope. The professional skiers passing by are not helping
either. Oh God, I’m gonna crash in the middle! I bet Alex will laugh hard
once my butt hits the snow. I feel like I’m seven all over again. Alright, you
can do it.
After taking a deep breath, I grab my poles and give a soft push in the
snow to start my descent. I control the speed, slowly turn right to avoid
some other skiers, and find myself smiling with joy as I overtake Alex, who
stopped in the middle to chat with some skiers. Yeah! Who’s the best now?
I’m skiing a diamond slope!
As I reach flat ground, I stop and look around quickly. I see a
welcoming coffee shop not too far away where all the skiers are heading.
Where’s Alex? Of course, he’s still up on the slope chitchatting. I turn and
see him waving at his buddies before he finally slides all the way down to
where I am.
“Are you alright?” he asks.
“I’m exhausted.” Not really, but I want a break.
“Already? We’ve only been here for half an hour.”
“Can we get some hot chocolate with marshmallows from that coffee
shop down there?” I point with my pole.
He rolls his eyes. “Fine, Ms. Van Gatt. Let’s take a break.” I beam
triumphantly, and I slide as excited as a kid all the way down to the chalet.
We take off our skis and leave them at the entrance with our poles. We
remove our snow goggles, gloves, and beanie hats before stepping into the
cozy, warm coffee shop. I like this spot, with its wooden interior and
fireplace burning. Some kids giggle and run around while their parents are
calling and rushing after them…
“Alexander?” While it’s not my name I hear, I look instantly toward the
bar, following the sound of the female voice.
“Sophie! Long time no see,” he replies excitedly.
A blonde emerges from behind the counter and happily trots in his
direction before hugging him and kissing his cheeks. Sophie seems to be in
her late thirties with a lean and fit body and very few wrinkles, probably the
manager or owner of the place.
“Indeed! Wow. It’s been so long. What? Ten years, if not more? We’ve
got so much to catch up on,” she adds, brushing his arm playfully. “What
are you doing after eight p.m.?”
“I appreciate the offer, Sophie, but I’m here with Petra, for her birthday,
you know.”
Finally, Sophie looks over slightly. Yes, I’m here! “Oh, your
goddaughter, isn’t it?”
We nod.
“I do remember you coming here when you were as big as this.” She
holds out a flat hand by her hips. “So, it’s your birthday?” I nod again.
“Congratulations! How old are you now?”
“Eighteen,” I reply, nerves flowing through my veins.
“Oh, wow. Such a baby. My son is just two years older. Your godfather
is the sweetest to bring you here, isn’t he?”
“He’s great, yeah…” I mutter, yet my expression doesn’t match my
words or Sophie’s excitement.
She looks back at him. “So, no wife, no kids, huh?”
“No wife, no kids.” He chuckles. “Always the same.”
“Well, in case you manage to free yourself up for an evening”—she
leans closer to his ear— “you know where to find me.”
He smiles back idly before rushing me to the outdoor terrace with a
direct view of the ski slopes. We find a table in a sunny corner near one of
the heaters. I’m still astounded by Sophie’s attitude. But I can’t blame her—
after all, we’ve kept our relationship a secret.
While looking intently at the many skiers sliding down the slopes, some
dangerously fast, I can’t help but say, “Am I gonna be known forever only
as your goddaughter?”
He smiles, probably seeing that question coming. “They know us like
that, just let it be. What’s important is us, not them.”
“So for the rest of the world, society in general, you have no intentions
of introducing me as your girlfriend?”
“Petra, there is no need to feed gossip…”
“It’s not about feeding gossip,” I snap. “I told Emma you are my
boyfriend. I’m proud of it.”
“Emma is your best friend. These people are nothing to us.”
“So our relationship will always be kept secret?”
“Let’s just say for people who don’t matter, they don’t need to know
anything for now. They won’t see it the right way…”
“How would they see it, then? I love you, you love me. Seems good
enough.”
“Well, they would find it…” He pauses, searching for the best word.
“Inappropriate,” he manages to say, before taking a deep breath. “Not
everyone is pure and loving like you. Most people would love to expose us,
paint a different reality for the sake of making a few bucks.”
I smile at him in understanding, but I feel tormented. How long will I
have to wait before we can make our relationship official? Getting married
will solve the problem. But I know neither Alex nor Dad will be keen to
talk about engagement and golden rings at this point. “Too young” will be
the usual answer. I sigh, saddened.
He notices and lays his hand on mine. “Hey...” I blink at the sound of
his voice. He gives me the stare. “Let’s go home. I’ll prepare you a hot
chocolate with marshmallows.”
I smile, radiant, picturing not only the hot chocolate, but something else
just as hot inside.
He goes to the kitchen while I’m still changing into a comfy pair of jeans
with fluffy brown winter boots and a light-pink knitted sweater. As
promised, I find a big mug with hot chocolate and marshmallows on the
dining table and a fire already glowing in the fireplace. I grin and take a big
sip as I look out the window. The sky has gone from light gray to blue with
just some clouds finally clearing.
“How is it?” he asks.
I didn’t even notice him walking toward me.
I smile, leaving some chocolate on the edge of my lips. “Fucking
delicious.”
Alex chuckles while looking at me. “Glad you like it.” He moves closer
and wipes away the chocolate with his thumb, bringing it to his mouth.
“Indeed, not bad.”
I leave the mug on the sideboard beside me. “But…” Then I reach up to
his lips, tasting them, and whisper, “Not as delicious as you…”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 23
“It’s our last night here,” she declares in a serious voice while we lie in bed,
her head on my chest.
“I know...” I caress her strands of hair, trying to forget the terrible fact
that I won’t sleep with her tomorrow.
She raises her head up and looks me straight in the eyes. “I want to do it
tonight.” Fuck, she is so stubborn, even in bed.
I know exactly what she’s talking about. “And I said no, Ms. Van Gatt.”
“But why? Why are you so against the idea?”
“I’m…” I look briefly away before facing her again. “I’m afraid of
hurting you.” But she doesn’t seem convinced. “Sometimes it’s hard to
control myself.”
“Why don’t we just try and see? If I can’t handle it, I’ll tell you.”
I sigh loudly, shaking my head. “I have never met someone as stubborn
as you.” She smiles, thinking she’s won. But I decide to scare her further.
“What if you tell me to stop and I can’t control myself and do it anyway?” I
know this should be enough to make her back out.
“I don’t mind.” I raise both eyebrows. “My idea, my risk.”
I shake my head again. She has no idea what she’s talking about.
“Petra.” I reach down to take her hand and put her flat palm on where I’m
already erect. “This is not two fingers…” Damn, I have to breathe out of
my mouth as I picture it inside her ass.
“I know”—she grows desperate—“but I really want to feel you…” She
pulls this off with such a sweet little voice that I shiver madly.
I kiss her lips and caress her cheek with the back of my fingers. But I
don’t say a word. She affects her most innocent face, batting her eyelashes.
“Please?”
I laugh, quite flattered. If I recall properly, only my former subs used to
beg me to fuck their asses. Wow. I tremble at the thought that Petra might
actually want to become one. Fuck, does she? It’d explain quite a lot… I
take a much-needed breath, trying to brush such thoughts away. But damn,
her curiosity never ceases to amaze me. “You’re very naughty, Ms. Van
Gatt. You know that, right?” She blushes at my compliment, smiles, and
bites her lip with a starving look. Jeez... “Very well,” I breathe out. Her face
beams with joy. I reach for my pillow and place it on her side. “Turn over
and lie with your belly on here.”
She obeys, lying on her stomach on the pillow. Her head down, she
bends her arms, legs driven wide apart, her ass ready for me. “Will I also
bleed?”
I have no idea. I hope not, but I prefer to prepare her for the worst. “If I
go fully inside, maybe. But it might be too painful.” Raising up on my
knees with her legs in between, I take the lube from the nightstand. “I’ll just
put the head in tonight.”
I put some gel on my fingertips and start rubbing them around her anus.
I feel her getting nervous but impatient. While I massage her, I can’t help
but feel apprehensive about what I’m going to do. Anal has always been my
weakness, my Achilles’ heel. I take a deep breath, put some more lube on
my palm, this time for my cock, and caress her opening with the tip. She
shifts her pelvis at my touch. “Do you really want to feel it inside?” I ask in
a whisper, just once more.
The question is enough to drench her.
“Oh yes,” she moans between breaths.
I keep circling it slowly around her entrance.
Her impatience growing, her body trembling, I bend my chest over her
back, my elbows supporting me. I reach for her left hand and whisper,
“Here. If it hurts, squeeze my hand and I will stop moving until it feels
better.” She holds me tight. I nibble the shell of her ear and ask in a voice
barely audible, “Do you love me?”
“Madly,” she breathes while I kiss her neck.
“I want you to be comfortable and relaxed. If you contract your
muscles, it’ll hurt more,” I explain. She nods in approval and squeals
instantly, feeling a bit of me inside. Unlike my fingers, this is indeed more
painful—I’m so thick and hard that she trembles, but her muscle is opening
to me with ease. She starts pushing her butt back onto me, like in the
shower. I thrust very slowly into her, but my cock goes deeper with her
movements. She whines and squeezes my hand. I remain still for a while—
the tip just got inside. I kiss her gently. She’s sweating, her breath loud.
“I’m feeling so weak,” she confesses shyly. “So fragile…”
I feel even more euphoric at her words.
“It’s normal…” I kiss her again. “You are tighter here.”
Indeed, between two fingers and my cock, there is a whole difference.
As I feel her relax, I slowly stroke farther in, then move back and forth
while keeping it inside. She continues to rub her ass around me in pleasure,
getting used to my presence.
“Ahh…” she moans for the first time.
I know she’s enjoying it. I wet my lips and decide to thrust deeper into
her.
“You said you were just going to put the head in…”
I chuckle at her sweet little voice. “I’m very sorry”—I bite the shell of
her ear—“but it became impossible to stop there.”
While I remain motionless inside her, I trace a line of kisses from one
shoulder to the other, then bring my lips close to the shell of her ear and
whisper, “You are incredible...” I kiss her again. “I’m so proud of you…”
She smiles broadly at me. Then we cherish and treasure this moment as
much as we can, but I suddenly realize tomorrow night she won’t be with
me anymore. I feel the harsh reality crashing down, taking my wife away. I
shut my eyes, disappointed by the hideous truth: she’s not my wife, and I’m
not her husband.
I don’t want to mess up by rushing her into marriage. After all, no girl
her age would think about getting engaged, let alone getting married. She’s
never mentioned anything about it either. I know I’ve got to be patient, take
things slowly. But damn, it’s harder than I thought, much harder now, with
my entire cock and cum deep in her ass.
Painfully for me, we’ve got to head back to Manhattan at two p.m., back to
the ugly reality of life. As I wake up and turn around, I find the other side of
the bed empty.
I hear the sound of a door unlocking, then a slight squeak and steps
coming closer. I grin, seeing him enter his—or our—bedroom. A paper bag
in hand, he takes a tube from it and tosses it on the bed near where I’m
lying. “Here.”
I grab the tube and read the description. “A vaginal cream?”
“The physician said this’ll do wonders to alleviate your pain. You may
also apply it…you know… there.” I chuckle, seeing him so embarrassed.
While I know I bled a bit after yesterday, the only pain I have is leaving
Aspen and him. He sits on the bed, leaning toward me. “I’m so sorry for
yesterday.” He sighs loudly, a disappointed expression on his face.
“For what?” I ask, confused.
“Sometimes it’s hard to control myself.”
I giggle and shake my head. “I loved every single moment.” I take his
hand and entwine our fingers. “I’m yours. My entire body belongs to you.”
“Don’t say that.”
“Why?”
“It drives me crazy, dangerously crazy.” He reaches down to taste my
lips. “You know what I love so much about you?”
My eyes sparkle with excitement. “Tell me.”
“You are curious. Very curious. I love it. Never stop being curious, Ms.
Van Gatt. Curiosity is what makes life exciting.”
Although I beam at him, I can’t help but feel a squeeze in my heart at
leaving Aspen today. After all, in just one week, I’ve had the most exciting
time of my life. I’ve gotten so used to living with him; to sharing the same
bed, the same shower, the same dinner table; to sleeping with him by my
side; to having him here. Just like a couple. I hate the idea of not living with
him in New York. I sigh.
“What’s wrong?” he asks.
When can I move in with you, Mr. Van Dieren? But instead, I say, “I’m
sorry, I’m just sad to leave today. I’m already missing you and we haven’t
even left yet.”
He holds me tight. I love to be nestled against him, feel his scent, his
heat, his heartbeat…
“I’m sad too, Petra.” He plants a long kiss on the top of my head. “But
you have exams very soon, and you need to be focused this coming week.
Otherwise your Dad will kill me.”
“I know…” I pause. “May I ask you something?”
“Sure.”
“Can we make love just once more before leaving?”
I glance out my seat window and heave a loud sigh at the view. This is it.
New York. Alex is sitting right in front of me, looking at me intently, a
drink in hand. “Your last exam is the twenty-first, isn’t it?”
“Yes,” I reply.
He empties his glass, his stare serious, thinking something through.
“Very well. We won’t meet or talk until then.”
I gasp in horror, my heart wounded.
“But, in return, I’ll pick you up and we’ll celebrate the end of your first
semester at my estate. What do you think? You could spend two nights
there before flying to Rotterdam.”
I smile joyfully, thinking about my reward. Being with him again, but
this time in Bedford Hills? Alone with him in his main residence? There is
nothing better! “Sounds like a great plan.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 24
“I just have two rules in this house,” he starts as we step into the entrance
hall.
Rules? I chuckle. Dad has tried to implement many in his household,
but I’ve never managed to follow any of them.
“What are they?” I ask.
“First, you don’t leave the lunch or dinner table before me, or without
having my permission to do so. Second, every evening after dinner, you’ll
change into and wear a nightgown—and only a nightgown. It’s already on
your bedside. Are we clear?” His tone sounds quite serious... I swallow
hard.
“Well, I kind of grew up with the first rule, but after breaking it so many
times, Dad just gave up.” I’m being playful, but not him. “Okay, deal. Your
house, your rules.” I sigh. “What about for breakfast? Can I go to the table
in the nightgown?”
“Ms. Van Gatt, breakfast is in bed. I intend to have you early in the
morning too.” My cheeks flush instantly at his words. I lower my gaze,
picturing that. Before I can say anything, he grasps my hand and gives me a
proper tour of the house, just before we head to dinner.
It’s such a strange feeling being here in Bedford Hills with his full-time
help, Maria, constantly around. In fact, the privacy and intimacy I felt with
him in Aspen has totally vanished. Maria is a very discreet fifty-year-old
lady from the Netherlands who can barely speak English. Her family has
been working for the Van Dierens for generations, and Alex trusts her
entirely. She’s a bit like my lovely Janine, except Maria lives here. And
unlike Janine, Maria doesn’t seem to be much into friendly chitchat. I notice
how she takes pride serving us dinner, pouring the soup into our bowls,
refilling our glasses with wine or water as soon as they are half empty.
Maria seems to take every single task very seriously. I wonder why she has
to remain in the dining room, standing against the wall, as we eat. Even
Janine would return to her tasks and leave Dad and me so we could eat
together peacefully. I smile and nod, but I don’t feel at ease during the
whole dinner.
On the contrary, Alex doesn’t seem to mind at all. He happily chats
about Columbia, my exams, Singapore… But I don’t want to stay here. I
want to go somewhere where we can finally be alone, maybe his bedroom. I
suddenly get an idea. “May I leave the table to change clothes?”
He smiles at my cheeky tone. “Where are your manners, Ms. Van Gatt?
I don’t think you asked politely.”
I chuckle and glance instinctively at Maria standing near the wall, her
gaze down. “Mr. Van Dieren, may I kindly leave the table to change
clothes?”
“See? Much better.” I blush at his stare. “You may do so. Maria will
escort you.” And I roll my eyes hearing her name.
Very quietly, Maria starts walking ahead and I follow closely behind.
Arriving upstairs, she leads me into his bedroom. I smile seeing my
nightgown at my bedside—a long, delicate Victorian-inspired white
nightdress made of cotton, lace, and a ribbon bow at the chest. It’s got a
touch of vintage and long sleeves for winter, just as I like. The bedroom
feels cozy and warm. Oh, no wonder—the fireplace is already bright and
burning. I love hearing the crackling logs. It feels so inviting.
“Do you need help changing, Miss?”
“No, Maria. It’s all good. Thank you.”
She bows her head and silently leaves.
I find her too comfortable. I wonder how she can manage to have her mouth
stuffed so full and not be terrified. She also hasn’t gagged yet. I decide to
force myself a bit farther. Fuck, she has to let go, give her entire control to
me. As I’m lustily moving up and down, her eyes start watering. I can see
her drooling, her breath getting louder, her pulse quickening, then I finally
hear her gag for the first time. Oh God, I love to hear her gagging. Her
reflexes are trying to expel me. I pull my cock away from the back of her
throat. The view is breathtaking, and my heartbeat is just as loud and
intense, if not more so, than hers. She is really here. Fuck. She’s really here
on her knees sucking me deep. I’ve got to shut my eyes at the intensity of
the pleasure. I’m so warm that my body starts sweating, and my mouth
drops wide open to drag some precious air into my lungs. “Ahhh… Keep
going…”
And she does keep going, eating me so hungrily that the slurping sounds
coming from her become too loud for me not to tremble. Damn, she’s
driving me crazy. “Ahhh…” I can’t stop groaning at the feel of her warm
lips and saliva on me. Shit, I’m the one who’s losing control. My mind is in
such a state of euphoria that I can barely contain my imminent orgasm.
“Fuck…” She’s gonna make me cum sooner than I wanted. “Oh Petra…” I
give up. I’m so insanely possessed that with deep, loud moans, I let myself
go and finish into her little mouth. She manages to suck my tip and drink
me all. Jeez! She has well-earned it. I notice tears coursing down her face,
and when I hear her swallow all I have to give, I can’t help but growl
between panting breaths. As I remove my cock from her mouth, she
instinctively coughs and splutters, taking quick, short gasps, her face
wonderfully red, wet, and messy. “You are so beautiful. God,” I breathe,
exhausted, kissing the top of her head repeatedly. “I’m so proud of you,” I
whisper.
I tuck my cock back inside my boxers, pull her up on my lap, nestle her
head against my chest, and stroke her long hair.
Without Petra noticing, Maria, her face down and restrained, silently steps
inside the room with a big glass of water and a painkiller served on a silver
tray—I’m still impressed how fast she can read my texts and bring what I
instruct. I take both, and Maria walks backwards, leaving without a sound.
“Hey…” I whisper before placing a kiss on the top of Petra’s head.
“Take this and drink some water.” She looks back at me, her face still wet
with tears as she wonders for a second how this glass and white pill
appeared, but it doesn’t matter. She puts it in her mouth and takes a long
drink before I kiss her forehead. “Feeling better?”
She smiles and nods. I know the back of her throat is still sore—talking
might be too hard. The medicine needs some time to take effect. “In an hour
or two, you’ll be fine,” I whisper in her ear.
She snuggles herself comfortably against my body and shuts her eyes,
resting there quietly.
“Thank you,” she murmurs before falling asleep.
I wonder what she is thanking me for. Is it the glass of water? Or
because I fucked her little mouth rough and deep? I don’t know, but from
the big, proud smile she had on her face, I’d say it’s the latter.
I have never felt this kind of love before. Heck, I don’t even know if it’s
healthy. And yet, I need more than what he’s given me so far. I want so
much to move here, live with him, marry him, and bear his children, but I
know all of these are just wild fantasies that have to be contained deep
down in my heart. I’m “too young,” as everyone—especially him—would
say at just the thought of these things. I let out a sigh. These are the
fantasies that terrify me the most. I feel so embarrassed and ashamed to
even think about them. But I know he’s the one, so why wait? After all,
we’ve met all of the conditions required to move the relationship forward.
I’ve tried to quiet my desires, but it seems so obvious, so why not? Why not
talk to him about it? Why should we wait years to make our relationship
official? Oh my... I swoon just at the idea I could be his wife. “Why don’t
we get engaged?” I ask quietly, my face in the pillow.
Alex remains focused on tracing a line of kisses down my naked back as
we lie in bed, waiting for breakfast.
“You just turned eighteen...” he replies as he reaches the small of my
back. “Don’t feel pressure because I’m older. I can wait…” And he places
another kiss there.
“I know...” I sit up and look at him. “But I can’t. I love you so much,
I… I…” Wow, I’ve never struggled so much to finish a sentence. “I really
want to get married, Alexander,” I finally tell him.
His lips part in astonishment, and I hear him swallow. “Have you
thought about your father? What his reaction would be?”
Oh, crap. Dad again. “What if Dad was okay with it?” I dare to ask.
His eyes down, he ponders for a moment. I hear only my heartbeat
pulsing hard in my chest. I’m not ready for his next excuse.
Total silence arises in the room.
Maybe I shouldn’t have talked about it… Damn it. Why did I have to
open my big mouth again? Just kill me now. His silence is long and
unbearable. I should just tell him to forget it.
“Then I’d love to, yes.” I shut my eyes at his words. It can’t be true! He
can’t have said that! Oh God, why feed my wildest dreams like that? He
smiles at me with a twinkle in his eye, then suddenly lowers his gaze. What
is he thinking?
He finally makes eye contact again. “Having you as my wife, Ms. Van
Gatt”—he lets out a sigh—“would be a dream come true.”
I gasp at his revelation. Dear Lord, those are the most beautiful words I
have ever heard. I feel my heartbeat fluttering hard and loud; simply the
word “wife” coming from his mouth is enough to cause my entire body to
shiver and light up.
But all of a sudden, his face gets more rigid and serious, his stare
worried. “But your father nearly had a heart attack when I told him about
us, Petra. I don’t think he’s expecting to have another brutal shock that
soon. After all, you just turned eighteen two weeks ago.”
“I’ll talk to him first, then. He can’t get mad at his one and only
daughter.”
He chuckles. “Indeed, who can? Just don’t be too tough on your old
man…” I laugh before he reaches up to meet my lips and kisses them
tenderly. “I have something to show you.”
I raise an eyebrow—he’s got that cheeky smile on his face. He gets up
from the bed and goes to his dressing room. There I can see him open a
drawer and take out a package wrapped in black with white satin ribbons. “I
want you to wear this for your sleepover at my house in the Netherlands.
Clarissa, one of the lady’s maids, will help you put it on. I can’t show you
what’s inside, since it’s for Christmas, but will you promise to wear it?”
I smile radiantly, curious as a kid. I want to know what’s inside so
much, but I decide to be patient and wait until Christmas to find out. “Very
well. I promise.”
I decide to talk to Dad before leaving for Rotterdam. I find him in his
library listening to Nina Simone on vinyl while reading a book. Any
rational person would be intimidated to confront my father. After all, Dad’s
known to have dirt on everyone—and ready to use it when needed. His
mood is also hard to predict—sometimes cold and distant, other times
friendly and caring. Dad makes sure he never reveals any fear, indecision,
or vulnerability at a press conference, interview, or public appearance. But
there’s one thing—and only one thing—that can intimidate Mr. Van Gatt,
making him swallow hard and causing his heartbeat to race like a sprint...
“Dad, can I ask you something?” The most terrifying question I can
pose.
He raises an eyebrow and turns off the music. Knowing all too well that
I always start a painful conversation with this question, he already seems
terrified.
“Sure,” he replies, closing his book.
I sit beside him, and with an innocent, childlike face, I ask, “Why did
you get divorced from Mom? Was it because of me?”
He was not expecting this. “Of course not. You are the best gift I could
ever have wished for. I can’t thank God enough for having you in my life.”
“So why did you guys get a divorce?”
He searches deep down in his soul for a reply, probably wondering why
I suddenly want to know this. But he’ll soon find out. “To be honest, my
dear Petra, when I stood at the altar, I knew it was probably a mistake…”
He pauses. “I didn’t know then what I know now… Don’t get me wrong,
your mother was a wonderful lady…”
“How did you know it was a mistake, then?”
“I just felt it.”
“So why did you go ahead anyway?”
“I guess I didn’t want to disappoint anyone… Mainly her. But deep
down in my chest, I felt I shouldn’t do it.”
I nod. “So, you still believe getting married makes sense if you feel
deep in your heart it’s the right thing to do?”
“Of course I do. You know what they say: ‘the heart has its reasons, of
which reason knows nothing.’”
“I see…” I pause, thinking something through. “Dad? Would you be
very disappointed if I told you I would like to get engaged to Alexander?”
He doesn’t seem surprised. After all, he probably knew this whole
discussion had something to do with him. “Well, I knew this would happen
sooner or later… I just hoped it would be on the ‘later’ side. You know,
after graduation or so…” He pauses. “Does he know about your
intentions?”
“We talked about it, yes. This is something we both want. He’s just
afraid of your reaction; he thinks you won’t be able to handle it after the
talk you two had. But I’m sure you can.”
“Indeed, that was the hardest talk we’ve ever had. He would’ve never
risked our friendship for any woman in the world. I mean, except for you.”
He ponders a few more moments, then takes a deep breath. “Are you really
sure about this?”
“Very much so,” I assert confidently.
“Well, if you feel he’s the one, then my only duty as your father is to
stand by your side and, when the day comes, walk you down the aisle.” I
grin radiantly at his words. “Do you want me to talk to him?”
I really have the best dad in the world. I jump into his arms, holding him
tight. “That would be perfect. Thank you so much, Dad.”
He gasps, feeling squeezed a bit too tightly. “Alright, don’t be late. You
have a plane to Rotterdam to catch. Did you buy a present for your mother?
It’s Christmas after all.”
“I’ll buy it when I land.”
But Dad seems to have everything already arranged, as he hands me a
Tiffany gift bag. “Here. Take this. She’ll like it.”
“Wow. You really think of everything.”
“Well, my assistant does.”
I hug him once more. “You’re the best dad in the world. Thank you.”
And I kiss his cheek before leaving.
Roy Van Gatt
As Petra leaves my library, I sigh and smile at her kind words. I knew since
that talk with Alex that their announcing an engagement was just a matter
of time. After all, he wouldn’t have risked our friendship if it wasn’t
serious. I would’ve preferred for them to get engaged after her graduation,
but there’s no changing Petra’s mind. She’s as stubborn and determined as I
am. When she has something in mind, nothing and no one can knock it
loose. Strangely enough, though, it feels like everything was already written
a long time ago. I smile happily nevertheless. After all, she’s getting
engaged to my best friend, utmost confidant, and business partner, someone
I trust entirely. I know he’ll take good care of her.
“Janine!”
“Yes, Mr. Van Gatt?”
“Kindly prepare a special dinner for two, please.”
“Sure, who is coming?”
I smile, feeling playful. “My future son-in-law.”
After serving supper, Janine has been asked to leave. Roy and I are now
totally alone. We’ve spent most of our time laughing and toasting while
indulging in a special reserve Château Pétrus to celebrate the occasion. But
suddenly Roy becomes quieter, his gaze thoughtful as he looks steadily
down at his plate, then back up again. “She doesn’t know about your past,
right?” He sighs. “I don’t want my daughter to have anything to do with
your… well… previous lifestyle.”
Fuck, I didn’t see that coming. I take a sip of my wine and shake my
head. “Of course not. I told you, my past is over.”
“I hope so,” he replies instantly. “Otherwise, this might have serious
implications for both of us. I don’t want her to have any trouble.”
“I gave you my word, Roy. I’ll never put Petra in any such situation.”
“I know, and you always do what you promise.” He pauses. “Very
well,” he mumbles while finishing his meal. The only sound is the chewing
of his filet mignon. “Can you promise me something else?”
“Tell me.”
He wipes his mouth and takes a sip from his glass. “I give you my
blessing for you to get engaged,” he announces. “And at this pace, I bet the
big day will come sooner than I’d like, but”—he pauses icily on the but
—“promise me she’ll only bear children after she graduates.”
I choke on my wine, taken aback, dazed and confused. Of all the
requests Roy could have possibly made, this one is the oddest.
“Rest assured, we’ve never spoken about kids, Roy. I’m sure Petra is
totally focused on her studies.”
“Good. She’s very young and deeply in love. I need her to keep her feet
on the ground. She’s made for greatness—a bright, bold future in finance,
Forbes Thirty under Thirty. Can you imagine—she could even be the
chairperson of our company when I retire, who knows?” His face glitters
with joy and pride as he languorously talks about her future achievements.
But his joy suddenly shifts to a cold, censoring stare. “And motherhood is
very time-consuming. Children can wait, right?”
I remain totally baffled and mute. Not only have I never spoken about
kids with Petra, but I also have no idea whatsoever what her thoughts are
about them. Heck, I don’t even know if she wants to have them. If she’s like
her father, it for sure won’t be anytime soon. I don’t want to answer now,
but I feel like I have to. After all, Petra told me she’s taking the pill. I just
hope she’s doing it right, as I have no intention of ever using condoms with
her. I love leaving a part of me inside her. Condoms belong to the past, to
those one-night-stand, no-strings-attached relationships and girlfriends I
didn’t trust. “Of course. I promise she’ll graduate before having kids.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 25
Tess Hagen
“Petra, I’ve spent these last fifteen years helping women escape abusive
relationships and marriages. You’ve got to get out now. It’ll get worse if
you wait until later,” I say, feeling like I’m suffocating.
Pfff, how easy it’ll be for Van Dieren to abuse Petra. She’s always seen
him as her caring, protective, and beloved godfather—one she trusts
entirely. How convenient for him to turn it into his advantage. Of course he
wants to marry her! She’s such a different kind of prey—a woman never
touched before but by him. That possessive asshole wants to make sure she
belongs entirely and exclusively to him, just like a rare, expensive toy. I
know it’ll be harder for Petra to leave him once she becomes Mrs. Van
Dieren. And even worse, once she has kids. The women most reluctant to
report their husbands to the police or take them to court are mothers.
I imagine Petra must be his biggest trophy. Dear Lord, banging the
barely legal daughter of his best friend without Roy blinking an eye, just
because he promised to marry her afterward sounds like the most disgusting
misogynist transaction ever. Like a property ownership trade between Roy
Van Gatt and Alexander Van Dieren. God, what wouldn’t he do to feed his
unmeasured ego and pleasure?
“Oh, Mom, stop! Can’t you see I’m happy with him?”
I’ve had enough. I’ve seen this over and over again—the young virgin
lured by an older man with a gentle smile. “You’re not happy, Petra. You
are brainwashed. Drunk. Delusional. Manipulated,” I yell. “This isn’t love.
At eighteen, no healthy girl thinks about marrying a forty-year-old
heartbreaker!” I take a deep breath. “You won’t marry him, and you won’t
be part of that family. End of discussion,” I insist louder. “One day you’ll
understand and you’ll thank me. Mark my words.”
“Very well.” She removes her white napkin from her lap and stands up.
“Then we have nothing else to discuss. Merry Christmas, Mother.” She
leaves the table hurriedly, runs to her bedroom, and locks herself inside.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 26
It only takes ninety minutes from Rotterdam to get to the Van Dieren estate,
which is located near the city named after them. I didn’t see my mother the
entire Christmas Day. She left home early in the morning, and only Anika
was present. Anika said Mom had some urgent affairs to take care of. But I
know perfectly well that she’s simply hurt from our heated argument, and
we’re both too proud to apologize. I just can’t understand why Mom is so
apprehensive. Why can’t she stand to see me in a relationship with him?
And why did she attack his family?
Perplexed, I decide to do a quick Google search on the Van Dieren
family. I don’t find anything disturbing or shocking. Most likely Mom is
overreacting.
As I stare out my window, I notice the car has just stopped in front of
black metal gates. The driver speaks to the security guards, then they
inspect the car and trunk before finally nodding, opening the gates. We
drive onto the property. It looks bigger than Bedford Hills. The road
through the snowy gardens stretches on for what feels like miles. The car
stops again. This time at… street signs? I lift my eyebrows. I see a
perpendicular road and read the directions: the right leads to the stables,
park, main gardens, and tennis court; the left goes to the chapel and staff
house (staff house?); and straight ahead is the manor. The car continues
straight, finally reaching the main roundabout and the entrance. Everything
is white, covered by the beauty of winter. I smile nervously, my stomach
knotting. Oh, dear Lord, I never imagined meeting my future in-laws at
only eighteen, but I also never imagined loving someone like Alex so
unconditionally at such young age either. I take a much-needed breath.
As the car parks in front of the entrance, I see Dad standing outside,
talking on the phone, his face serious and annoyed. I frown. Who’s he
talking to?
A valet opens my door, and once I exit, Dad finally hangs up.
“Hi, Dad. Is everything alright?”
He doesn’t reply immediately.
“Hi, Petra. Well… Your mother is really upset, to say the least.” I shake
my head. “She’s not happy about your plans, and she thinks I raised you
poorly.”
“Neither am I about her behavior and the way she is talking to you.”
Dad smiles at my comforting voice, but I know he’s still vexed by Mom’s
vicious words. I move closer to him and into his arms. “Mom doesn’t know
me as well as you do. She’s just freaking out because I’m more mature than
any girl my age. Plus, she spends her days at that nonprofit dealing with
abusive relationships and marriages, so I imagine she’s even more worried.
It’ll be alright, don’t worry.”
Dad takes a deep breath. I know it’s not easy for him either. “Thank you
for your kind words, Petra. I’m so glad to have you.” He hugs me tight and
plants a kiss on my forehead.
“I’m so glad to have you too, Dad.” I feel him getting slightly
emotional. “Shall we?”
“Sure. Don’t forget to be polite.” I try hard to suppress a laugh. I love
how Dad translates “don’t kiss Alex in front of me and his family” in such a
charming and politically correct way.
Before we can ring the doorbell, someone opens the door wide.
“Welcome, Mr. and Ms. Van Gatt. My name is Stuart. I’m the main
butler.” He greets us enthusiastically. “I hope you had a great trip getting
here. And Merry Christmas!”
“Thank you very much, Stuart. Merry Christmas to you,” adds Dad.
As we step inside the entrance hall, Stuart helps me take off my black
coat, then Dad’s, and disappears to hang them.
I gape as I take in my surroundings. The wood-paneled hallway opens
into an opulent lobby with high ceilings, a crystal chandelier in the center,
and a majestic stairway. Old family portraits in golden frames—maybe
some centuries old—decorate the walls.
I see five figures emerge from a room—two women accompanied by
two men I don’t recognize, and Alex. Ahhh… I feel my body melting at the
sight of him. My heart starts fluttering nervously. After all, it’s the first time
Dad’s around since we’ve been together.
“Roy, always so nice to see you.” Alex gives him a warm, friendly hug
and a clap on the back. “Merry Christmas, my dear friend.”
Dad grins with joy. “Merry Christmas, Alex.”
His blue eyes finally land on me.
All of a sudden, my heart stops for a moment, frozen at the sight of such a
holy creation. I lose track of time as I stare at the thin figure standing beside
Roy, with long, wavy black hair falling below her chest, a barrette holding
some strands back, and wearing a red plaid dress and black stilettos. I
swallow hard and dare to look into her big blue eyes. They petrify me. I
manage to compose a smile—hopefully a good one. She giggles innocently
at me. Damn, my eyes can’t help but devour her. My heart always pounds
faster and louder when she’s around. I feel like just a poor human admiring
the most divine creature ever created.
“Ms. Van Gatt,” I greet for the sake of politeness in front of our
respective families.
She beams at me. “Mr. Van Dieren.”
I take her hand and slightly bend down to kiss her hand. She shuts her
eyes for a brief instant as I lay my lips on her skin. But for me, that’s
enough time to picture our entire stay in Aspen and to know exactly how
right this is. There’s nothing in this world that I’m more certain of than her
—her as my fiancée, her as my wife, her as the mother of my children, her
as my lover, her in every sense. She smiles tenderly, as if she knows exactly
what I’m thinking. I love you, my gaze says.
“Alright, enough, Van Dieren,” snaps the most annoying woman I
know, stepping forward. “Welcome, Petra. I’m Yara, the youngest sister.
And this my husband, Elliott. Merry Christmas!” Yara greets Petra by
plunging her into a warm hug.
“And I’m Maud, the second youngest. This is Philip, my husband.
Merry Christmas!” Maud also does the same, and Philip shakes her hand.
“Nice to meet you all. Merry Christmas.”
I can’t help but notice the difference in the two sisters’ appearances. Yara is
fit and tall, with spotless pale skin. She has a defiant, cold dark-brown stare
and seems like a general in the army with her impeccable posture. On the
other hand, Maud’s shorter, tanner, not as athletic, and a bit curvier. Her
face is much warmer and shows more empathy. Their styles are also quite
the opposite—Maud is wearing a simple long silk tunic with loose black
pants and heels, plus an oversized necklace, while Yara wears an elegant
white shirt buttoned up to the neck, beige slim-fit pants, and equestrian-
style boots.
“Yara’s a professional polo player,” states Alex, probably noticing my
curious face. “She has an obsession with boots and an aversion to stilettos.”
We all burst into laughter.
“Ha Ha. Van Dieren is in funny mode tonight.” She looks back at me.
“Let’s just say I wear heels only in extreme situations, or when there’s a
mandatory dress code.” I can’t help but chuckle. “And Elliott loves to see
me like that, right?”
“Of course.” He sounds sarcastic. “It wouldn’t be the Yara I know if you
wore stilettos at Christmas like everyone else.” I love this Elliot. His
sarcasm is fantastic. We all laugh even harder.
“Well, glad to meet someone like me. I don’t wear heels very often
either.” I add, but obviously tonight I made an exception.
“You know, Petra, Yara plays even in winter when the fields are covered
in snow,” adds Maud.
“Wow. I hope one day I’ll be able to attend one of your games. Where
do you usually play? Here in the Netherlands?”
“Sometimes, but in winter it’s mostly in St. Moritz. They usually do the
World Cup there.”
“Amazing! You’ve got to show me some pictures and videos when you
can. I’ve never seen a polo game in the snow.”
“Sure. I’d be happy to show you after dinner.”
“Actually, her bedroom is full of awards and pictures, so it’s not hard to
get an idea of her obsession for polo,” teases Maud.
“Well, I just copied my dear brother…”
“You used to be a polo player?” I had no idea.
“Nothing serious, just as a hobby. But our team did win some
competitions,” Alex says. “Everyone used to play, right, Maud?”
“Indeed…” She sighs. “Sports have never been my thing. But we have
annual tournaments between families. It’s always fun.” I wonder what
Maud’s “thing” is—after all, she looks more creative and artistic and much
less rigid than Yara. “I’m a lab scientist, so nothing to do with all of that,”
she ultimately admits. Definitely not what I had in mind. “I must have the
most boring job in the family…” She smiles with an ounce of
embarrassment and takes a sip of her water.
“It is the most boring, Maud,” teases Yara.
We hear footsteps coming down.
“I’ve never seen a single picture of you…” I follow the sound of the
sharp voice on the stairs, laying eyes on an elegant, fit lady with silver-
white hair. She’s probably over sixty-five years old, wearing a black shirt
and pants, and a long, sophisticated jacket, with red lips and an impeccable
but imposing posture. “Yet I’m pretty sure you are Petra Van Gatt.” Her
face welcomes me with a warm, beautiful smile, and I find myself blushing
at it. “Alexander has spoken about you so much that I could draw you
blindly. Welcome home, Petra.” Margaret gives me three kisses on the
cheek and a maternal hug that feels quite odd. “And Merry Christmas.”
“Many thanks, Mrs. Van Dieren. Merry Christmas.”
“Please, Margaret,” she corrects, pinching my chin playfully. Margaret
glances around. “And of course Julia is not yet here.”
We hear the doorbell ring.
Margaret decides to open the door herself. “Ah, Julia, finally. Where is
your sense of punctuality? You are dressed as if you just came from the
office. This is Christmas, dear Lord.”
Stepping through the door, Julia sighs and rolls her eyes at Margaret’s
sermon. “Right, because Yara dressing like she just came from a polo game
is perfectly acceptable.”
“Merry Christmas to you, Julia,” replies Yara with a smirk.
Julia sends one back, like they’re used to the banter. She then takes off
her Burberry light-gray gabardine, gives it to the butler, and greets Margaret
with three kisses on the cheek. “I’m sorry, Mom, but I had to finish a
motion for next week. I’m handling a very delicate case.”
“We know. They are all delicate for you,” Margaret snaps. “Hello,
Sebastian,” she says, looking at Julia’s husband.
“Margaret,” greets Sebastian.
“Petra, let me officially introduce you to my three wonderful daughters:
Julia, my second oldest, followed by Maud and Yara, who had the decency
to arrive on time and whom you’ve already met. And as you know,
Alexander is the oldest and my only son.”
“And the one who never settled down,” teases Yara, taking a sip of her
tea.
Everyone bursts out into laughter.
Except Margaret. “Yara!”
“Oh, it’s a joke, Mom. You take yourself way too seriously.”
“And you not enough.”
I give three kisses to Julia, and she gives me a warm hug afterward.
Wow. Looks like all the girls love to hug each other. “I’m so glad to meet
you, Petra. You’re divine. I love this dress on you.” Julia seems to be the
sweetest of them all. Her energy feels so bright and reassuring. She’s also
the most beautiful to me—incredible glowing skin; white teeth with a
magnetic, friendly smile; wavy blonde hair to her shoulders; and an
impeccably fit and toned figure. I also love her elegant dress, beige with a
white pattern in a fit-and-flare style, and matching earrings and beige
stilettos. I get the sense that she’s the friendliest of them all, and also the
most mature. I smile, a bit envious not to have her as a sister. I also realize
none of the sisters have blue eyes—just Alex and Margaret.
“Thank you, Julia. I love your dress too. I have a lot of fit-and-flare
dresses at home. They are my favorites.”
“Indeed, they look great on you.”
While Margaret invites everyone to move to the grand salon, I wonder
who the three women are left standing behind in the hallway in uniform.
The first one holds the hands of two teens maybe twelve-to-fourteen years
old, the second one is holding hands with two younger girls between six
and ten years old, and the last one carries a small baby and has a toddler.
They go upstairs and discreetly vanish into a room.
“Julia’s governess and two nannies,” murmurs Alex as he catches me
staring.
“You mean those three ladies work for Julia?”
“Yep, the others had already arrived.”
“So, wait… You are telling me those six kids belong to her?”
Alex chuckles. “Margaret has twelve grandchildren. So imagine having
them all here among us. It’d be quite chaotic.”
I’m doing the math, but it seems like quite a lot of children in the
family. Or at least to me, growing up alone with no siblings, just like
Emma. “Indeed, a bit chaotic.”
“Ms. Van Gatt?” calls one of the staff.
“Yes?”
“Lady Margaret would like to see you in the Picasso room. May I escort
you?”
“You have a Picasso in your house?”
“You should go. It will be like heaven on earth for you.”
As I follow Clarissa down the long corridor, I look up at the walls and
wonder who these people in the gold-framed portraits are. Are they all
ancestors and family members? Does Alex also have a classical oil portrait
of himself hanging on a wall somewhere?
Clarissa knocks on the door and, after hearing an approval, opens it,
invites me inside, and closes it behind me.
“Ah, Petra. I’m glad you are here. Alexander told me you love art, so I
thought this might interest you.”
“Wow.” I gape as I take in my surroundings. The room features not only
modern artwork on the walls but also abstract sculptures in the center.
“Indeed, this place is amazing.” My eyes roam around the room until they
stop at the Picasso painting on my left. Shit, I also see a Monet!
Unbelievable! I have always admired these artists, but have never seen any
of their work in such a private collection. “I hope you’ve got a lot of
security for these paintings.”
“Don’t worry, we manage.”
A housemaid enters, setting a silver tray down on the low glass table
and removing the tea set of Chinese porcelain with a hand-painted motif. I
notice that there’s only one teacup. “Do you want sugar or milk in your tea,
Ms. Van Gatt?” she asks.
“Just tea is fine.”
She pours the tea into my cup and hands it to me.
“Thank you.” I take a first sip and smile—jasmine tea.
She nods and leaves, closing the door behind her.
“Can I tell you something?” asks Margaret as she sits on one of the
sofas facing the low table.
I stop looking around and sit down in front of her.
“Sure.”
A whiskey in hand, she takes a sip with a pensive look on her face that
transforms into a sly smile. “My son doesn’t like what he can fully tame,”
Margaret declares confidently. I, still in shock, wonder if it’s a hint. “All the
women in his past were determined to please him, no matter how old, how
rich, how beautiful they were. After being with him for a while, they’d just
do whatever he asked them to do and be whatever he wanted them to be. He
has never truly respected one enough to settle down with.”
“I know,” I admit. “He’s a heartbreaker…”
“Indeed, and a master at it. But with you…” She pauses. “I have never
seen him so vulnerable, so soft, so tender…” I blush and lower my gaze. “It
looks like you have been taming him as well. I hope you’ll never change.”
I instantly gasp at her words. Why would I tame anyone? I don’t
understand what she means. “I don’t tame anyone, Mrs. Van Dieren. I think
Alexander just likes the way I am.”
“You may call me Margaret, Petra,” she corrects me again. “And you
will soon enough, believe me.” She takes a deep breath in then exhales
slowly. “Do you really want to marry him?”
My heart starts racing nervously. I’m still not used to such directness. “I
do.”
“You know… Alexander is not a simple man, Petra,” she warns. “He’s
been raised with centuries-old traditions, customs, rules, values, and
principles that we observe and follow strictly.”
“Like the table thing?” Margaret raises an eyebrow. “I mean, that I have
to ask permission to leave the table, unless he stands up first?”
“Yes, that is one of them. If you become his wife, you become part of
this family, and therefore you’ll also have to observe and follow these
customs.”
Fuck! My heartbeat is pounding faster and louder with every word out
of her mouth. Suddenly, I recall the argument with Mom just yesterday, and
her harsh criticism about his family. Well, it doesn’t seem as harsh now.
“Like, which ones?” I ask, my tone dangerous.
“Will you give him offspring?”
I almost choke on my tea. “I beg your pardon?”
“Don’t be surprised. I know many women that don’t have kids, not
because they can’t but because they simply choose not to. I respect that, but
not for my son. I want Alexander to have a Catholic wedding and heirs
before I die.”
Damn, she’s so blunt! I take a deep breath, but my jaw has already
dropped. Cool down, Petra, you got this. After all, I also have an
authoritative mother just like her. I think for a second how Dad seems to be
the coolest and nicest parent ever, compared to them. Being raised by him
doesn’t seem as terrifying either. “If this reassures you, Margaret, I intend
to have children, yes.”
“Do you smoke?”
Looks like the inquisition has started…
“No.”
“Do you drink alcohol?”
“Sometimes.”
“How often?”
“Not much, just when there is a celebration.”
“Do you take drugs?”
“No. Never have and never will.”
“Coffee?”
“I’m a tea person.”
“How many languages do you speak?”
“Three fluently.”
“What are the Van Gatts’ views on politics?”
“We don’t do politics. We finance them.”
Margaret nods with a thoughtful air. “Looks like Roy did a good job.”
“Do you have any other questions, Margaret?” I ask, my tone assertive
and confident.
“Just one, but I will ask later. I don’t want to scare you…”
“Please, go ahead. I have nothing to hide. I’m fully aware that
Alexander is your only son and the only one who never settled down.” I
smile at her astonishment. “I also understand you want to know who I am.”
Margaret raises both eyebrows. “Wow. Your maturity impresses me.
Very well…” She looks straight into my eyes, her stare defiant. “Have you
had other lovers before him?”
“I was a virgin until him.” This time I neither blush, nor look away.
“That’s all I wanted to know, Petra. Thank you. Now, let’s take a tour
around the artwork. I’m sure you want to see them all.” And just like a kid,
I stand up, tension vanishing, ready to enjoy my reward.
I leave the Picasso room alone, as Margaret had to discuss some urgent
matters with her butler. I try to find my way back, following the laughter
coming from somewhere. One of the corridors is particularly dark, but I
can’t find how to turn the lights on, and unlike at home, they don’t seem to
be automatic.
“Still alive?”
“God! You scared me. Of course I’m still alive.” I love seeing Alex
standing in this corridor alone—I’ve missed his lips so much. But Margaret
or any member of the staff could come by at any moment, and tonight is
definitely not the right one to make a bad impression.
“How was it?”
“Great actually. The room is wonderful. Such an amazing art collection.
I wish Dad could’ve seen it.”
“I wasn’t talking about the room…”
I knew he wasn’t, but I had to try nevertheless. “Oh, Margaret is great
too.”
He raises an eyebrow. “Great? Really? Petra, you can tell me the truth.”
“I’m serious. She was just trying to get a sense of who I am. It’s alright.
She cares a lot about you and wants to make sure I’m not some psycho
stealing her precious son.”
He nods, and before I can blink, he snatches me up and shoves me
against the wall, pinning me with his body. Holy shit! He parts my legs, lifts
me, and presses his erection between them. Fuck, I can feel his cock already
so big and hard. He starts humping against me, my legs wrapped around his
waist, while devouring my mouth with such greed I can barely breathe. Oh,
dear Lord... “Alex, not here.” I manage to mumble while he’s sucking my
neck.
“Let’s do it quick before dinner,” he growls, in a hurry to unfasten his
belt.
What? He’s crazy! My eyes can’t stop darting around. All of a sudden,
we hear silverware clanging and footsteps coming. Alex closes his belt
immediately, wipes my gloss from his mouth, and takes a step back while I
smooth my dress and hair. We see a waiter crossing the perpendicular
hallway, carrying a big tray of food to the dining room. Alex chuckles. But
not me. “It’s not funny. Your entire family is here. My own father is here.
Kids are playing around. They don’t need to see this,” I scold. But he has
that cheeky smile on his face.
“You are right, Ms. Van Gatt.” He takes a step forward, puts his hands
under my dress, reaches for my panties, and pushes them slowly down my
legs.
“What are you doing?” I snap.
“I want them,” he gently asserts.
“I can’t have dinner without them.”
“Of course you can.”
I’m shaking my head while involuntarily lifting each foot. I can see my
panties in his hand—a black lace thong with a bow at the back, just like
he’d instructed me to bring.
He smiles victoriously and slowly stands up while caressing my legs,
then shoves my thong into his pants pocket. I huff and fold my arms,
displeased, but he licks his lips and meets my eyes again. “Before we go,
kindly listen carefully,” he begins. “When you go to sit, discreetly lift the
back of your dress up so your pussy touches the chair.” I gasp at his words.
“Then, bring yourself close to the table, your posture always straight, your
elbows down, your legs slightly open and never crossed.” I giggle but not at
him. “I’m serious, Petra. Do you understand?”
I nod.
“Perfect, let’s go. We are late.”
It’s an intimate dinner with only ten guests, which includes Margaret
herself, sitting at the head of the table, Alex on her left, me at his side, and
Dad on Margaret’s right (which would usually be Julia’s seat). Their
offspring are having dinner in a separate room with their respective
governesses and nannies. I can’t help but wonder why each daughter has a
governess and a nanny—what is the difference? Julia, the oldest, even has
two. Why so much help? I blink at the sound of Julia’s voice among the
laughter. Apparently, she seems to be telling a joke that caught everyone’s
attention but me.
“So he turns to me and says, ‘No, your Honor, I don’t have any.’ So I
ask him, ‘Why are you lying? We know you have a boat; we need to
account for all the assets in the divorce.’ And he finally turns to us, his face
as red as a lobster, screaming, ‘Because it already belongs to her!’”
Everyone bursts out laughing, but I didn’t catch the first part of the story.
Alex notices. “Julia was telling us one of her many stories in divorce
court. This guy put the ownership of his boat in his wife’s name to avoid
paying taxes, and when she wanted the boat, he said he didn’t have one
because it was already hers, crying like a baby in court, since he’d had a
prenup to protect his ass,” he explains, laughing.
“Alex!” snaps Margaret, irritated by his vulgarity.
“Assets, I meant.”
I can’t stop chuckling. It’s so hilarious seeing him being reprimanded
for once. “You only handle divorce cases, Julia?” I ask.
“I do family law, which includes divorces, custody of children, domestic
abuse, and so on.”
“Oh, my mother has actually been helping women of humble
background get decent lawyers in court.”
“Very noble of her. What’s her name? Maybe I know her.”
I glance at Dad, but he’s entertained discussing something with
Margaret. “Tess Hagen,” I reply. Julia tries to contain her surprise, taking a
sip of her water. “Do you know her?”
She swallows and seems to be measuring her words. “I know a Tess
Hagen, yes… She also finances political causes, if I’m not mistaken…”
“Julia,” trills Margaret. “No politics at the table!”
“My mother finances politicians?” Alex squeezes my leg tight under the
tablecloth.
“It’s alright, Mother,” says Julia. “I respect everyone’s ideologies. She
just supports political and social causes I’m not very keen on, that’s all.”
I don’t ask further, but I keep wondering which social and political
causes she is talking about. After all, if I recall correctly, Mom has a great
reputation and esteem in the public eye. I’ve seen many interviews praising
her for her achievements in financing renewed lawyers for women who
can’t afford them. Lawyers that maybe Julia knows well.
“Do you want some wine, Miss?” asks a waiter, showing me the
decanter.
I glance at Julia’s wineglass and find it empty—Maud’s and Yara’s too
—but the rest are happily drinking. I can’t figure out why. “No, I’m fine.
Thank you.” As the waiter leaves, I lean discreetly over to Alex and
murmur in his ear in a tone barely audible, “Why aren’t your sisters
drinking? They don’t like wine?”
Alex nearly chokes on his burgundy. He looks at me with a twinkle in
his eye and gives me a smile I have never seen before. “One day I will
explain.” Jeez... His voice is so warm that my lips part in excitement. I
suddenly feel his hand fondling my inner thigh. I hold my breath for a
second, eyes glued to my plate, and try to focus on my vegetables, but he’s
moving dangerously close to my pussy. Holy shit! No panties there. My
heart starts racing in total alert, beating faster with every touch. I try to put
some food in my mouth, but I’m too scared I’ll choke on it. I drink some
water instead. My cheeks flush at the feel of his fingers rubbing my clit. I
close my eyes and take a deep breath. I want to tell him to stop, my face
will tell it all in a few seconds! But Alex acts nonchalant, chatting away
with Dad and Margaret. How can he keep up a conversation while turning
me on? Fuck. I despise him in this moment, but I have to do the same. As
I’m about to talk to Julia, Alex pushes a finger inside me.
“Ah!” I cannot restrain my gasp. I’m getting dangerously horny, wet,
and warm. I’ve never hated him more than I do right now. I start picturing
our week in Aspen, his cock pounding me for the first time, how much I
trembled at the feel of him, how I sucked him right after…
“Are you alright, Petra?” asks Julia.
I blink at her voice. “Yes, of course. I just like to eat slowly.” I take
another sip of my water. “I noticed you have six kids. Isn’t that
challenging?” It’s the first subject that came to mind. I have to remain
focused, forget he’s fingering me—otherwise it’ll only get worse.
“It’s alright. I have some help. When Arthur, my youngest, wakes up,
we can go and see him if you want. He’s seven months old.”
I try to focus as hard as I can on Julia’s words, but Alex adds a second
finger to challenge me even further. Damn it. I just know one thing—he’ll
regret it later. “Of course. I’ve never seen a baby that close, actually,” I
manage to say.
“Really? You don’t have siblings?” I shut my eyes for a brief moment,
not because of Julia’s question, but those two long fingers are slowly
thrusting in and out, giving me thoughts I shouldn’t have at a Christmas
dinner table. “Are you sad? I hope my question didn’t offend you.”
But I open my eyes again instantly at the sound of her voice. “Not at all,
Julia. I was just thinking how lucky you are to have siblings. I grew up
mostly alone in New York. Glad I have Janine.”
“Janine? Is she your nanny?”
“Not really.” I take a deep breath to cool down my pleasure, but it’s
harder than I thought.
“Governess?” She keeps asking.
“Janine’s a special lady to me. She’s an amazing cook and housekeeper,
and at the same time, she managed to raise me, give me advice, go shopping
with me…” His fingers are taking my breath away; I’m even soaking them.
I wonder if my fluids will wet my seat too. Holy shit! I gasp in horror. I
figured it out. He did it all on purpose! This is a fucking game to him. If I
soak my seat, he wins; if not, I do. Oh God, help me. I can’t let him win—
it’ll be a total embarrassment! What if someone notices and then reports it
to Margaret? I’ll be perceived as some horny slut who can’t control herself.
“That’s quite remarkable that she managed to do it all and have time to
raise you,” adds Julia. “I have two nannies, two maids, a chef, and a
governess, and even so, I see them struggling to keep up with the pace of
the household.”
I nod, but all I want is to cry out loud, beg him to put those fingers
deeper into me and make me cum. Fuck, Alex! I know in that instant that I
lost.
A waiter whispers in Julia’s ear.
“Petra?” I look up at her. “Looks like Arthur just woke up. Would you
like to see him?”
Julia murmurs to her husband, and I see him nodding.
I decide to do the same and whisper into the ear of the most annoying
man at this table, who still has two fingers in my pussy, “Mr. Van Dieren,
may I kindly leave the table to go upstairs with Julia?” His face looks
unreadable, not a single beam of joy. He just nods. As I stand up and make
my way out, he looks discreetly at my seat and finally smiles.
Julia and I go upstairs to her bedroom. I’m astonished by how grand it is,
with high ceilings like the rest of the house, tall windows, and elegant
drapes. Julia also has her own en suite bathroom and dressing room. We go
to check on little Arthur, who’s happily awake in his white wooden crib. He
stares intently into my eyes and starts giggling loudly, probably finding it
amusing that we have the same eye color. “Oh, he is so cute! Can I hold
him?”
Julia raises an eyebrow. “Sure. Aren’t you scared?”
“How can someone be scared of such a little cutie like him?” I mean,
Arthur looks like a very calm baby. I softly hold the back of his head and
nestle him against my chest. “I’m sorry to have brought up my mother. I
shouldn’t have.”
I notice Arthur drooling on my dress and decide to hand him back to
Julia.
“It’s alright, Petra. Don’t worry. My mom just doesn’t like when we talk
politics, that’s all.” Julia places a soft kiss on his head, but Arthur seems to
want something else. “Would you mind if I breastfeed him?”
I’m shocked. I’ve never seen a baby do that, let alone in front of me. I’d
prefer to leave Julia alone, as I feel strange disturbing her privacy, but then
someone knocks on the door and, before we can say a word, opens it.
“May we come in?” ask Yara and Maud playfully.
“Of course. What a question.”
The women enter and each give Arthur a kiss. Yara holds him and starts
giggling with him, while Julia sits on a sofa at the back of the room. I notice
how Clarissa, the maid, is unzipping her dress from behind. As Julia pulls
the dress down, I lay eyes on her beautiful white lace bra. Yara hands her
little Arthur back, who seems delighted and joyful to be nestled against his
mother’s chest. I look away when Julia pulls her right breast out.
Yara opens the first window in front of the door, which is the one
furthest away from Julia, and lights up a cigarette.
“Oh, beautiful, Yara,” rebukes Maud. “I can’t believe this.”
“Still smoking?” Julia shakes her head. “Didn’t you tell everyone you
stopped?”
Yara takes her first puff quietly. “Calm down, you two. It’s only one
cigarette to celebrate Christmas. I stopped in public and in front of the kids.
That’s what I promised. Oh, sorry, I’m so rude. Do you want one?” she
asks, looking at me.
“No, I’m fine, thank you.”
“Well done, Petra. Don’t smoke—it’s terrible for your body and skin.
Plus, you’ve got such a spotless and flawless one,” flatters Julia. “You will
age gracefully.”
Yara rolls her eyes.
“How do you handle your stress and anxiety, Petra? I’m amazed by your
discipline. You don’t smoke, you don’t drink…” asks Maud.
“I’m sure she has other ways of releasing her stress,” teases Yara.
The three girls burst into laughter, but I raise an eyebrow.
“We know about you and our brother. It’s okay, don’t worry.”
“Did he tell you?” Did they notice he was touching me?
“No, but you and your father are the only non-family invited. So, it’s
not hard to guess… Plus, let’s be honest, the way you both look at each
other says it all.” I blush and smile, looking down. “By the way, you know
he’s gonna have the talk with Margaret, right? That’s why he brought you
here,” continues Yara, enjoying her cigarette.
My heart skips a beat. “The talk?”
“Well, yeah. He never invited Amanda to Christmas in ten years.
Margaret has this weird old tradition that Christmas has to be spent only
with family.” Wow, Mom was right. “Or those who will soon be a part of
it…”
“Lovers are therefore excluded,” interposes Maud.
“That’s why you and your Dad are here,” adds Julia with a big grin on
her face.
“You mean he needs to ask her?” WTF? He’s an independent adult, after
all. And what if Margaret doesn’t like me?
The sisters look at each other, carefully choosing their words.
“Yep. She has to give him her blessing.” Yara has to be joking—after
all, she always speaks in this playful, frisky way. “Poor guy, we never
needed it, but since Margaret has to give him the family ring… Anyway,
you'll be fine.”
My heart skips beat. It doesn’t seem like a joke anymore.
Julia smiles at me. “Indeed, otherwise he wouldn’t have brought you
here. Don’t worry,” she adds with her usual soft and mellow voice.
“But what about Hendrik Van Dieren?” I dare to ask. “I didn’t see him.
Are he and Margaret separated?”
The sisters fall silent, looking again at each other.
“Kind of dead,” giggles Yara. “You know, when Mom found out about
his bastard, she didn’t take it lightly.”
“Yara!” triggers Julia.
“What? It’s alright, Petra knows him. You know Jimmy, right?”
“Vaguely.”
“Let’s say Hendrik is far, far away,” snaps Julia, closing the subject.
A cold silence arises in the room, but Julia breaks it. “What if we
brunch at my house tomorrow? Sebastian will be out duck hunting with his
friends and family.”
What? Her husband is a hunter? No one else seems bothered by her
announcement. As a vegetarian, I can’t help but feel sick picturing the poor
animals being killed by those men. Fuck, it’s so barbaric! I start to wonder
if Alex is also a hunter. Oh God... I shudder at the thought.
“Great idea. I’m in.” Yara takes a last puff of her cigarette before
throwing it to the snow.
“Sounds like a plan,” adds Maud.
Julia smiles radiantly at their assent and looks back at me. “What do
you think, Petra?”
Pfff, I can’t believe this woman married a man who kills animals for
pleasure. She looks so lovely and caring. “Sure, sounds great.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 27
A couple of hours later, it’s finally time for my sisters to leave the estate.
Petra wanted to see the other kids, but they were already seated in their
respective cars, patiently waiting for their parents to finish their goodbyes
and small talk.
Once they are gone, Petra and I wish good night to my mother and Roy,
but they don’t seem to be paying much attention to us. We find them
happily chatting in the petit salon—a cozy sitting room with a bright
fireplace. I hold Petra’s hand and we go upstairs, excited like teenagers. We
cross the hallway, past my sisters’ bedrooms, and at the very end, I open a
door, welcoming her inside.
“This is your bedroom?” she gasps while taking in her surroundings.
“Wow. You’re kidding me. This is probably bigger than most apartments in
Manhattan.”
“Yep. And I never brought anyone here,” I reply, hands in pockets,
caressing her panties. I love the fact she doesn’t even remember I have them
in here.
“What do you mean?”
“My mother is very... um… old-fashioned.”
“So why does she accept me staying over?”
“Well, according to her, only the woman I will marry can bed me under
her roof. And since I never intended to marry anyone before…” She blushes
at my answer, but her eyes remain glued to the wall, which features framed
photos of my equestrian competitions and polo games, accolades, some
horse riding implements, and trophies standing on a chest of drawers.
“It’s hard to believe you were a professional equestrian.”
I chuckle. “Indeed, time flies.”
She points to one of the frames where I’m on a horse performing a
working trot. “What kind of competition is this?”
“This one was a long time ago. I was maybe twenty-six there.” I smile,
recalling the memories. “It’s an upper-level dressage competition.”
Petra raises an eyebrow. “A what?”
“I taught you that, Ms. Van Gatt.” We look at each other and chuckle.
“Alright, you were maybe slightly too young to remember.”
My eyes instantly lock with hers. Fuck, I just want to pin her against
this wall, spread her legs wide, wrap them around my waist, and do
everything I’ve pictured the entire evening. But instead, I take a deep breath
and remain as courteous as possible as I explain, “It’s a highly skilled
competition where judges assess how well-disciplined a horse is for its
rider. For that purpose, the animal is trained to perform from memory a
series of predetermined movements, like a choreography.”
She doesn’t seem impressed. “That’s it?”
“It’s an art, Petra. Even if it’s only pursued for the sake of mastery.”
Dear Lord, why are we still talking?
I try to find the excitement behind such “art” while scrutinizing his
memories on the wall. “Did you hit your horse with this?” I point at the
riding crop that’s next to the frames and awards.
“Well, it’s normal.” He starts chuckling. “You want him to be obedient.
If you’re not strict, he’ll never get trained. But don’t worry, there are
specific rules in competitions—you can’t just strike your horse as it pleases
you.”
Although I know he’s genuinely talking about horses, the talk with
Margaret strangely resonates through me and seems less blurry. He has
always loved equestrianism and has transmitted this passion to me, but I’ll
never understand why whipping a poor animal is considered an art. The art
I know and love doesn’t require any type of violence.
“I could never hurt an animal for the sake of awards or training. Sounds
barbaric,” I snap to demonstrate my firm stance against animal brutality.
Alex smiles with great amusement. “I know. You used to be afraid
you’d be too heavy for the pony.” He laughs hard, shaking his head. “You, a
tiny little thing, thought you could hurt a pony. You are so funny, Ms. Van
Gatt.”
“That’s me.” I smile back at him, and before he can reach me for a kiss,
I see a half-open door with access to another room. “What’s over there?”
Alex lets out a sigh, displeased to have been thwarted. “My study and
library, Ms. Curiosity.”
I skip over joyfully. Alex follows behind me. I gasp in admiration at the
two-level library linked with a spiral staircase. I feel like I’m in heaven with
the walls of books. This library and office space feels like a hidden secret
room. I love it!
“So many books! Have you read them all?” I take one from the shelves
that looks quite dated and dusty—maybe a first edition—and look at the
back cover, intrigued. I can already picture myself stealing it to read
tomorrow.
Suddenly, I hear him unfastening his belt and unzipping his pants.
“What are you doing?” I snap while trying to turn around. But he holds
me tight against him, grabs the back of my neck, and bends me over his
desk, my face resting flat on it.
“I need to fuck you now,” he growls hurriedly while lifting my dress up.
And before I can even blink, he rams so deep into me that it takes my
breath away. “Ahhh!” I squeal at the intensity of it. My heart starts racing
nervously as he pushes his cock slowly back and then savagely forth with a
strength that scares the hell out of me. “Ahhhh…” I panic and whine, as I’m
filled with fear. I’m breathless for a moment, but he keeps groaning even
louder. He pulls back again and I shut my eyes tight, trembling at his next
move. He grunts lustily while forcing himself farther in, and I whimper in a
broken and feeble voice. But he doesn’t care. His strokes become more
urgent, hurried, pounding me repeatedly in and out while gripping my waist
so hard I wonder if it’ll bruise. I feel my pussy breaking apart, my body
quivering. But I don’t beg him to stop, no. “Ahhhh...” Instead, I continue
whimpering as I endure every single thrust. He neither kisses me nor holds
my hands. He’s just entirely satisfying himself . The more frightened I am,
the harder I feel his cock forcing inside—and the wilder he seems to be.
I’ve never heard him growling so savagely before. At this point, I feel like
that horse who has to remain obedient to its rider. I shut my eyes, as I can’t
shut my ears. He rams farther and faster into me, propelling my hips
forward with every thrust, but I’ll never ask him to stop. “Ahhh…” My
breath comes in short, loud gasps, and my mind can barely digest so many
emotions. I feel fear, pain, anger, and… fuck, desire. Desire to obey and let
him do it. I remain silent, my face resting on the desk, ashamed that I want
him to keep going—to keep using me so savagely for his own pleasure, to
keep satisfying himself with me, his slut, his sub, his in every sense. Damn,
I can’t even believe this is turning me on.
With his arms holding me tight, his strength blocking me from making a
single movement, he pushes himself into me one last time as deeply as he
can to fill me completely, and with a long, bestial groan, I feel his cock
tighten and pump his cum inside. I wish I could have been deaf to not hear
it so sharply. Even after that, he keeps going back and forth, and with each
thrust, I feel more of his cum entering me. He starts to slow down, until he
finally stops and remains inside me for a moment, savoring the pleasure at
having used me so selfishly. I can feel his orgasm dripping out of me. It
must have been a lot. Then he removes his cock very slowly, wipes it on my
ass, and, once the tip is totally dry, puts it back into his boxers. I can hear
his zipper and belt fastening. Why did he do that? Why was he so rough
with me? I’m still paralyzed, barely breathing.
“Turn to face me,” he orders icily. His tone is enough to give me goose
bumps.
I obey, totally mortified, in shock at what I just went through. My face
messy, scarlet, my cheeks wet with tears, I stand up and feel his warm cum
trickling down my thighs.
“Look at me.” He pulls my chin up, forcing me to stare at him.
Frightened by his glare, I swallow my anger and keep quiet.
“There will be times I might want to throw myself entirely into you
without foreplay, without tenderness, without cuddling, without being
gentle.” He sighs. “Do you feel comfortable with that?”
My jaw drops at his words. How can he ask me if I’m okay with that?
“I…” That’s the only word I manage to mumble feebly. I’m so
disappointed, confused, and enraged by his attitude that my mind is totally
blank, unable to form a proper sentence. But he’s still waiting for an
answer… And to my surprise, I stare downward and mutter the word he’s
expecting, a word I find repulsive and humiliating for the very first time.
“Yes.”
“Good.” He kisses my forehead like a rewarding gesture for my
behavior, then moves down to my lips, but I show no reaction whatsoever
to his touch. I don’t even look at him. He brings my hand to his chest where
I can feel his heartbeat, and presses it against his skin. “Can you feel it?” I
nod, looking away. “It belongs entirely to you, Petra. I’m all yours.” He
pauses. “Are you all mine?” We hear knocking at the door. “One moment!”
He waits for my answer, staring intently at me.
I look back at him and reply, despite my voice being weak and broken.
“I am.”
He grins with an air of satisfaction. “I love you, Ms. Van Gatt.” Then he
brings my hand to his lips, very slowly kissing my knuckles, and I find
myself smiling timidly at it. “Don’t worry, you’ll get used to it. It’s just
frightening the first time,” he adds, bringing my body closer to his. “May I
have a kiss?”
I give him a quick one for the sake of him letting me go. Once he does, I
run into his bedroom and close the door behind me. I hear him sighing
loudly, then walking toward the library door and opening it.
“My sincere apologies, Mr. Van Dieren, but Lady Margaret would like
to see you in her office. May I escort you there?”
“Sure, many thanks, Stuart.”
After he leaves, I take a shower with the intention of washing away my
pain. Yet my mind is still tormented by what he has just done. I’ve never
refused him before—why would he need to be so rough? I think about Mom
and her warnings about Alex, and Margaret telling me how all women, after
a while, were trained to please him and do whatever he wanted. I’m scared.
Very scared. Not of him, but of losing him if I become too docile and too
obedient, like his previous girlfriends. After all, I’m still so inexperienced,
so young—easy prey for him. Oh God, what if I’m just a game to him? A
dressage competition to win? Is the engagement also part of it? I swallow
hard, petrified.
Someone knocks on the door.
“Yes?”
The door opens timidly. It’s Clarissa, the lady’s maid.
“Good evening, Ms. Van Gatt,” she greets. “May I?”
“Sure. Good evening, Clarissa. What can I do for you?”
Clarissa raises an eyebrow. “Um, I’m here to help you to dress in your
nightwear, Miss.”
“Oh, sure.” I realize I’m again following his orders, but I’m too curious
to see what he’s brought for me. Plus, I already promised to wear it.
Clarissa goes to his dressing room and takes the package from a drawer.
As she opens it, I see that the content is enveloped in black tissue paper.
“Could you kindly undress, Miss?” I obey and remove my dress, my
black bra, and my black lace thigh highs.
She opens the tissue paper. I glance over to see a red corset—Christmas
red. I can’t help but smile. Clarissa takes the lingerie and lays it on the bed.
I take the red lace thong with a bow on the back and put it on, then pull on
the new pair of black lace thigh highs. Clarissa takes the red corset, wraps it
around my bust, and starts to close the clasps on the front one by one.
“Miss, could you please brace yourself on the back of this chair, so I can
tighten the back?”
I push the chair, turning it to face the wall that displays his awards—as I
definitely can’t stand to look at my figure in the mirror—and hold myself
against it. Clarissa starts to tighten up the red laces from behind. I’ve never
worn a corset before, but I feel Clarissa compressing my waist and chest a
bit too much. Breathing feels difficult as she continues to push even further.
“I’m sorry, Miss. But it has to be tightened well.”
I let out a sigh, the nerves boiling under my skin. I know Clarissa is just
following his orders… And so am I. Damn it. I look again at the wall in
front of me with all his “dressage” awards and the framed photos of him
holding his trophies, him riding his horse, him mastering the poor animal.
Fuck, I’m not his pet to be domesticated, for God’s sake! And I have the
firm intention of reminding him of that.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 28
“I’m so happy to have met her, Alexander. She’s such a wonderful enigma,”
states my mother, sitting beside me on the sofa.
I smile, quite flattered. I knew she would like her. “I’m very glad to hear
that.”
“You know… God works in very mysterious ways.” I raise an eyebrow,
although not surprised—Mother has always been quite religious.
“What do you mean?”
“Her father was telling me about that incident when she was seven. Isn’t
it incredible? This young lady loved you even before knowing what love is.
And despite all the efforts from her family to remove you from her memory,
no one managed to remove you from her heart. And do you know why?”
I’m perplexed, knowing Roy has shared such a secret. “No, I don’t.”
“Because she gave it to you, Alexander.” Her lips twitch into a sly
smile. “While stealing yours.”
She then opens her jewelry vault, standing on the low table, and hands
me a small midnight-blue velvet box.
“What is it?” I ask, opening it. “Mother! It’s your engagement ring.”
“Not really…” She has that twinkle in her eye. “It belonged to me, to
your grandmother, and to your great-grandmother. It dates back to 1870
when Mr. Van Dieren found the finest and purest sapphire of his time in Sri
Lanka. He took it to a jeweler, who polished it and created this unique piece
that has been worn in our family ever since. If you take a closer look, you’ll
see our family name has been engraved inside. We only pass down this ring
if we truly believe our oldest son will get engaged to the right woman, with
the right heart and the right mind. It’s hers now.”
I gasp, speechless. And just when I think I know every single custom
and tradition in my family, my mother still manages to surprise me. I look
down and try to find the right words, but they aren’t coming. “I don’t know
what to say… I… Thank you, Mother.” I hug her tight. “How did you even
know about my intentions to propose to her so soon?”
She smiles at me, caressing my jawline. “Oh, Alexander, I’m a very
resourceful woman.” But I remain staring at her, confused. “Well, Roy
spoke to me about it. After all, that’s what best friends do.”
“Indeed. Roy will never stop surprising me. Just like my future wife.”
I’m still quite emotional as I head back to my bedroom, the velvet box held
steadfastly in the inner pocket of my jacket. I wonder where I can take her
for the proposal. After all, it has to be somewhere as special and magical as
her.
I also wonder if she’s still mad at me. C’mon, Petra, just because of
some rough sex? Really? I have to talk to her, but as I step into my
bedroom, I gasp and my heart skips a beat. “Oh, dear Lord…” My cock
grows hard at the sight of her. Petra’s sitting on the edge of my bed, her lips
red, her wavy hair styled like a fifties diva, the red corset I gave her
wrapped very tight around her body to accent her delicious waist and chest.
She’s also wearing her new black lace thigh-high stockings and stilettos.
She smiles, waiting for me quietly and silently. Just like I’d imagined. She’s
so hot. Fuck, my Christmas present is right here, waiting for me to possess
her again. I smile with pride. She’s so perfect, docile, and obedient, just as I
wanted.
“Do you like it?” she asks in the sweetest and meekest voice I’ve ever
heard.
Wow. I blink twice to be sure I’m not dreaming. “Very much so,” I
reply, barely containing my excitement.
“Take off your clothes.”
I obey immediately and prompt myself to undress as fast as possible.
She’s not mad at me anymore—she wants me!
“I believe you forgot something, Mr. Van Dieren.”
I smile again and remove my boxers, revealing my cock, already long
and hard, ready to pound her again.
She doesn’t look down, doesn’t blush, just wets her lips. “Come closer.”
I move forward excitedly, ready to lie down on top of her.
“I said ‘closer.’ Not ‘over.’” She presses her heel against my chest,
moving me backward.
I stand right in front of her, perplexed, confused. What does she have in
mind?
“Now sit on your knees.”
I raise both eyebrows. “What?”
“I said ‘sit on your knees,’” she repeats, emphasizing every word.
I want to protest, but I’m too damn curious and excited to see what
she’ll do next. Therefore, I obey and sit on the floor on my knees.
Fortunately, there is a carpet underneath.
“Head down.”
I smile and look at the floor.
She stands up, walks around me, and stops right behind me. “Now bend
over, forearms on the bed.”
Fuck. This is too much! Who does she think she is? “Petra…”
She brutally brings her heel down on my back, forcing me to bend.
I whine.
“Do not contest my orders,” she yells like a general.
I grudgingly obey again and brace my body and forearms on the edge of
the bed.
“Head down,” she repeats louder.
I shake my head, displeased with her childish behavior, but I find
myself putting my head down between my arms. Is she crazy or what?
At that moment, I feel a light caress on my back. But it doesn’t come
from her fingertips, it feels like leather. Leather? Wait—
“I let you have me the way you wanted. Now it’s my turn.”
And with all the strength and rage boiling in her, she violently strikes
me with my riding crop.
“What the fuck are you doing?” I snarl.
“Shut the fuck up! Or I’ll do it harder!” She hits me again with even
more strength. I try to endure it, but my body twists instinctively and my
back starts burning. She hits me again, again, and again… I bet she loves
hearing the sound of the strong leather violently hitting my flesh. It’s
probably drenching her little pussy… Damn! I’m trying hard to handle the
strikes, but I whimper at the last one. I feel my back growing hot as hell—
it’s probably marked. Her breath quickens as she beats me even more
enthusiastically.
I can’t stand it any longer and start whining. “Petra! Fuck! Stop!”
She finally shows some mercy and stops, while observing me—more
precisely, while enjoying my pain and my reddened back. She violently
grabs my neck and bends down to my ear. “Look, there’ll be times I might
just want to whip you without foreplay, without tenderness, without
cuddling, without being gentle…” My body shivers instantly at my words
repeated back to me. “Do you feel comfortable with that?”
My heart skips a beat. I’m not sure if I love or hate her behavior. “Does
punishing me like that turn you on?” I ask, my voice broken.
She smiles, triumphant. “Very much so.”
Damn. I sigh loudly. “Then yes. Let me turn you on.”
I hear only silence.
“As you wish,” she snaps icily, before letting out a breath of annoyance.
Wasn’t that the correct answer?
Fuck! Another stroke. Looks like she’s decided to grant herself as much
pleasure as possible by flogging me even further.
I whimper louder and louder, then swear and snarl at every hit.
But she ignores me. After all, I didn’t beg her to stop yet. My pride tries
to endure every flog. I bet my back is in terrible condition by now, covered
with wounds.
Thankfully, she finally stops, and I hear the riding crop fall to the floor
beside me.
He whines as I press the cotton with the antiseptic cream against his bright
red marks. He then sighs loudly but hasn’t said a single word the whole
time I’ve been taking care of his back. His silence is unbearable. I know he
wants to say something. I feel it…
“I’ve never let any woman flog me before,” he finally snaps, his tone
cold as ice.
While I feel pity for his poor back, I have no intentions of apologizing. I
actually feel quite relieved, the pain in my chest gone. Margaret was right:
taming him was the perfect antidote. “I see.” I tremble thinking about the
question stuck in my throat. “Have you ever flogged a woman with that
kind of strength?”
“What strength?” he teases.
I press the cotton firmly against his worst bruise.
“Ouch!” He stays silent for a moment, pondering, then lets out a sigh.
“Yes… Many.”
My heart drops, hearing the truth. I get goose bumps picturing him
being so violent.
“But I won’t do it to you. Even if you beg me to.”
I burst into laughter at his serious tone. “You’re so funny. Don’t worry. I
have no intention of begging you to do such a thing. Seems way too
painful,” I reply. “Quite interesting how everything is relative.”
He chuckles at my observation. “Well, what I did to you didn’t leave
any bruises…” Okay, he’s got a point. I might have gone a bit too far.
“Ouch! Can you take it easy on my back?”
I giggle like a child. “Stop complaining, Mr. Van Dieren. Otherwise I’ll
leave you just like this.” He turns to face me, starting intently at my mouth.
But I have more to say. “I love you, Alexander. But never take me for
granted. I’m not like those women you can tame and do whatever you want
with. If you repeat what you did in the library, I’ll punish you again.”
But Alex is still obsessively staring at my lips instead of my eyes. I
smile, catching him distracted. I wait patiently, and he finally blinks up at
me.
“I see,” he mumbles vaguely, his mind far away, probably still
pondering my words. “And once we are married?”
My jaw drops in shock. “Does it make any difference?”
I’m not sure why, but I’m already so wet and horny again. More than usual.
Maybe it’s the idea of having him in his family house. Damn, I recall how
he’s never brought any woman here before. He’s finally being tender like
he’s always been, kissing my lips, sucking my neck and my tits, fondling
my skin, and squeezing my thighs. I open my mouth wide to drag some air
into my lungs. My pelvis arches, following his rhythm. “I love it so much
when we make love this way,” I murmur between panting breaths.
He gives me that cheeky smile, intrigued. “What do you feel?” he asks
while slowing his thrusts.
I sigh and blush at his question. I feel too shy to tell him. Instead, I
bring his hand down to my abdomen.
I see a twinkle in his eye and his mouth twitches into a smile full of
pride. He knows the meaning, and I feel our bodies get closer to cumming.
“That I’m giving you a child?”
“Ahhh…” I shut my eyes, but my mouth remains wide open and my
body can’t stop trembling. I’ve never felt so drenched at a simple question.
I nod. How does he know me so well? But suddenly I recall that stupid
promise he made to my dad, and decide to apologize. “I’m sorry… I
shouldn’t have…”
“It’s alright.” He smiles, staring at my sweaty face, then kissing my
forehead. “I feel it too. Most of the time, that’s what I’m thinking when I
cum.”
What? I can’t believe what I just heard! Does he also want a baby? I
feel like cumming at his words, and I can’t help but moan louder than usual.
“Oh, Alex, don’t say that,” I plead between squeals of pleasure as he keeps
pounding harder and farther in.
“One day, you will bear our children, I promise,” he declares, while
finishing deep inside. He kisses my lips, enjoying and cherishing the sound
of our heartbeats.
Oh, Alex, why not now? Why waste so many years? I couldn’t have
hated my father more for making this request. I sigh, irritated. This is
exactly the type of obedience that I despise the most. “It takes so many
years to graduate… I can do both, you know…”
He chuckles at my words. “You have plenty of time, Petra.”
I do, but he doesn’t.
Nevertheless, since I don’t want to ruin the evening, I smile at him and
silence my thoughts.
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 29
I’ve decided to propose on New Year’s Eve. Tight schedule, I know. I have
not even a week to plan a romantic escape. It has to be somewhere that
surprises her, takes her breath away, and makes her eyes sparkle. A place
where we can spend a memorable evening. Maybe somewhere in Venice?
Or Paris? I can’t wait to see her face when I finally bend down on one knee
and ask her: Ms. Van Gatt, will you marry me?
Damn, I can’t help but shiver at the thought of it. While looking at the
ring nestled in the box, a tender smile alights on my lips. This ring is so
perfect for Petra. I know she’ll look sublime wearing it—after all, I already
saw her doing just that in my dream.
I hear knocking on my office door. I close the box, put it back inside my
jacket hanging on the chair, and order the person at the door to come in.
A security guard from the gate steps inside. “Mr. Van Dieren, my
apologies for interrupting, but we have an unexpected guest.”
“Who?”
The guard moves closer and shows me on his iPhone the live feed from
the gates.
“Let her in,” I reply.
“Mr. Van Dieren, are you sure?”
I nod.
He takes his walkie-talkie and conveys my answer to the security at the
gates.
“Kindly stay here,” I instruct. “I might need you to escort her out, in
case she becomes violent or doesn’t want to leave.”
My heart starts pounding as I serve myself a glass of Macallan from the
crystal decanter. I will definitely need more than one.
After a few minutes, I hear knocking.
I know she is here.
I take a long drink and sit slightly on the edge of my desk.
The door opens, and Stuart lets her in.
“What can I do for you, Ms. Hagen?” I dare to ask, despite knowing
exactly why she’s here.
“Don’t get engaged to my daughter!” barks Tess furiously, swaggering
toward me until my guard restrains her from getting any closer.
“I see news travels fast.” I take another sip. “I’m sorry, Ms. Hagen, but
this will be up to Petra to decide, not you.”
“Don’t destroy her life, Van Dieren! You know she deserves better than
you! She deserves to meet someone who doesn’t have your past, who hasn’t
done the things you have. Someone good. Stop this relationship now. This
is beyond evil!”
Damn, the high-pitched sound of her voice is deafening. “Ms. Hagen,
I’m sorry you can’t see beyond my past and the mistakes I made then, but
you should get used to this new reality. Petra and I will be engaged soon,
and she’ll ultimately become my wife and the mother of my children—your
grandchildren.” Her face flushes instantly, boiling with rage. Not a good
sign. “I’ll ask you to leave now,” I order.
But she has no intention of doing so. She points her index finger at me
in disgust. “You’re repugnant! You and my ex-husband might have the
money and power to hide everything, but I have nothing to lose! I only have
one daughter. ONE. And I’ll make sure to protect her from your evil grip!
You can bet I will!”
“That’s enough,” I shout louder. “How dare you threaten and insult me
in my own house.”
“I have people who are ready to testify in court and share their stories
with the media, Mr. Van Dieren. People who know how dangerous and
cruel you and your family are.”
I give a quick head signal to the security guard.
He grabs Tess by the arm and drags her to the door, but she violently
resists. “I know where the exit is, thank you!” While walking backwards,
she glares at me one last time. “Leave my daughter alone! Or I’ll destroy
you, my ex-husband, and your precious family. You’ve been warned.”
The security guard escorts her out until she gets into her car, making
sure she leaves the property without any further damage.
I’m still in shock. I can’t believe Tess came here, screamed and
threatened me on my own family estate! It all seems like a terrible
nightmare. Except it’s not. I take a deep breath, refill my glass, and call Roy
to come urgently.
It doesn’t take long for him to knock on my door. After all, my tone
over the phone was quite alarming.
“What happened, Alex? It looks like you just saw a ghost.”
“Worse than that…” I rub my eyelids. “Tess came here. She knows
about my intention to marry Petra, and she’s not happy, to say the least.”
“What? Tess came here? She’s insane.” Roy shakes his head. “I spoke to
her yesterday over the phone. She asked me to withdraw my blessing, but I
refused. I won’t break the hearts of my daughter and my best friend.”
I smile briefly. “Thank you, Roy.” I give him a warm pat on his
shoulder. “Did she threaten you if you didn’t?”
“Apart from saying I was a terrible father, a disgusting pig, and some
other nasty comments, no… Why?”
“She did threaten me.” Roy swallows hard. “She intends to destroy us
and my family.”
“Bullshit! She has nothing. Don’t worry about her.” I stare down,
pondering his words. “Are you okay?”
“Bullshit or not, we need to find out what she has against us, and who
these people are that she’s talking about.”
“We’ll find out, don’t worry. I know what’s at stake.”
“Roy, I promised I’d keep Petra out of this, but… Do you think we
should talk to her?”
“Definitely not! She can’t be involved at all. I don’t want her to become
an accomplice in any way. Otherwise she’d have to report us to the police in
order to remain innocent.”
“You’re right, I’m sorry. I’m still in shock,” I reply.
“We should talk to Margaret. She’s the only person who can still carry
on a civilized conversation with that insane bitch.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 30
I’m radiant. I pour some tea in my cup while reading a couple of emails.
But suddenly I hear knocking and Anika steps in.
“Tess, there’s someone here for you.” Anika opens the door a bit further,
and I smile—even though I’m not that impressed to see her here.
I stand up, adjust my pink dress, and keep my posture as straight as I
can. “Mrs. Van Dieren, such a pleasant surprise to see you here in my
modest house.”
I check the lady out briefly. She sports a long carmine-colored coat and
wears a shade of lipstick that matches her outfit, along with imposing gold
earrings. Her short silver-white hair is pushed back, and her elegant smoky
eyes gleam.
“Good afternoon, Tess.” Anika closes the door behind Margaret and she
moves closer to me. “I apologize for my unexpected visit,” she begins. “I
heard you came to my property this morning. I’m saddened you didn’t even
let me know you were there. I would have invited you in for tea.”
“Indeed, I had some urgent matters to discuss with your son.”
“I figured that out. Shall we have a seat and try to discuss this rationally,
as two mothers who only want the best for their children?”
“Sounds reasonable.” Margaret and I sit on either end of the sofa.
“Would you like some tea?”
“No, thank you. I’m fine.” Margaret studies me while taking a deep
breath. “So, may I ask the reason why you are so against my son marrying
your daughter?”
“You know perfectly well the reason, Margaret.”
“You know perfectly well that everything he’s done was consensual.”
“Right, and what about one of the women dying because the choking
stopped her from breathing? Consensual?”
“It was an accident,” she snarls immediately. “And you know perfectly
well it wasn’t him.”
“There was no evidence found against him, but that doesn’t make him
innocent.” Margaret heaves a loud sigh, irritated. But I remain calm and
serene. I know Margaret will do anything to protect her family—I only have
to persuade her. I put my politest and calmest voice on. “Look, if you care
for your son as I do for my daughter, then convince him to leave Petra
alone. That’s all, Margaret. If you do that, we are all good. I can assure you
I’ll say nothing.” I take a sip of my tea, smiling triumphantly as I observe
her. I can tell she’s taken my request seriously.
But Margaret shakes her head. “I already gave him my blessing and the
engagement ring…”
“That’s none of my business. Tell him you changed your mind. Or just
tell him the truth. Tell him I’m ready to move forward and expose him, my
ex-husband, and more, if necessary. My daughter won’t marry a murderer,
an abuser, and a manipulative man like him!”
“Watch your mouth, Tess!”
“Margaret,” I snap assertively. “There are millions of girls in this world
—he can pick any one he wants! But not Petra, not my daughter.”
“Very well. Time to talk seriously now.” I smile. Finally. “What do you
have against my son that could seriously compromise him? If you show me
your game, I will convince him.”
“Now we are talking.”
I stand up, reach into my purse, and take out a file that I hand to
Margaret.
She puts her glasses on and attentively examines every single page.
I sit again and pour some more tea in my cup, my expression victorious.
Margaret lets out a sigh. My smile gets wider. She closes the file—looks
like she has seen enough. “That’s the only thing you want in exchange for
your silence?”
I nod. “That’s all I ask, Margaret. Have I ever said anything before?”
“Not that I’m aware.”
“It’s a simple request. It might be painful at the beginning, but I’m sure
your son is rational and smart enough to know what’s at stake.”
Margaret ponders a few more moments. “There is no other way we can
negotiate this?”
“The life of my daughter is not negotiable.”
On my way back, I’m not happy, to say the least. Tess isn’t bluffing. Those
are serious allegations. Enough to feed not only the media—as I know
perfectly well there are a couple of reporters out there just waiting for a
juicy story about my family—but also for a judicial investigation, lawsuits,
and trials. That’s a Pandora’s box I do not want to open. Even the names of
Julia and Sebastian Van Den Bosch are on the report! My daughter cannot
be involved. Julia needs to know about this.
I have regrettably no good news to bring home. I shake my head. I
despise Tess so much. Such an evil creature indeed. No wonder she’s gone
into politics. How did she manage to get those documents? Who did she
pay to get them?
“She showed me the police reports filed against both of you, along with
some photographs, the location of the club, a list of its members…” I
inform Roy and Alex when I return. “Julia’s and Sebastian’s names are also
in there. She has some women who are ready to testify.”
I hate to bring bad news. The petit salon is the usual room for serious
discussions. My dear Alexander is sitting beside me, holding his head in his
hands and trying to fathom this nightmare. He probably never thought one
day this would come back to haunt him and destroy his happiness. I sigh,
my heart bleeding to see him like this.
Roy leans on the wall near the window, his stare furious, shaking his
head. “The women won’t talk. They all signed an agreement.”
“So did Tess. But looks like she’s ready to break it to prevent Petra from
getting engaged,” I reply.
My son is still thinking. “What about Yara? Is she named in the
papers?”
“I don’t think so. But who knows? If they start digging, if some women
recognize her, Yara’s name might appear too. And she still has those stupid
tattoos. If anyone recognizes them…” I shiver at the thought of it.
“I tried to convince her to remove them with laser treatment, like I did
with mine. But you know Yara…”
“Yara might face jail time. We cannot take this lightly, Alexander,” I
remind him.
My son seems lost. If Tess was not Petra’s mother, it’d be so easy to
take care of the problem. But unfortunately, she is.
“What should we do?” he asks.
I look down thoughtfully, then I stand up, put my hand on his shoulder,
and say what has to be said. “Alexander, you are my only son, and God
knows how much I want to see you happy. I know you truly love her. But if
Tess moves forward with this, no matter how innocent you are, your
reputation, your businesses, our family, and God knows what else might be
at stake. It’s not an easy decision. I’ll leave it to your wise consideration.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 31
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 32
Surprisingly, Dad has been taking his breakfast with me every single
morning since we came back from the Netherlands. I can’t help but wonder
if it’s part of his New Year's resolutions. After all, he knows it’s just a
matter of time before I move out to live with Alex.
Today is no exception. Dad is still here in the kitchen with me, reading
his paper while I’m finishing my tea.
“You don’t mind revealing your identity to the press now that you are
no longer an intern, right?”
“Um, what do you mean, Dad?” I ask before giving a sip of my matcha.
“Forbes would like to interview you. Are you available tomorrow?”
But I choke on it just as fast. “What? Why me?”
“They are writing about young raising stars in finance and
entrepreneurship. I talked to Chloe, the reporter, about your investments in
art and your own fund. She’s keen to meet you.”
“Dad, is this really necessary? I’m still in my freshman year…”
He puts down his paper, staring intently at me. “Of course it is. Now
that your agoraphobia has been under control, we need to start building up
your public image, not as my daughter, but as Petra Van Gatt—with her
own identity, her own personality, her own dreams.”
I roll my eyes. I want to decline, but Dad seems so happy. Seeing me
profiled in Forbes is such a dear dream for him, and I don’t want to ruin it.
Plus, like most things in my life, he isn’t giving me much of a choice.
I take a deep breath and give him the answer he expected from the
beginning, “Fine. I’ll do it.” I stand up and give him a kiss on the cheek. “I
have to go. I have class in an hour.”
I hear Janine pull the curtains wide apart, but I don’t dare to open my eyes
just yet. “Good morning, Ms. Van Gatt.” Then hangers rattle from my
wardrobe. “So, what do you think about wearing something a bit more
smart-casual today? Why not some heels? After all, it’s not every day you’ll
be live on YouTube.”
I gasp in terror. “Live on YouTube?” I prop myself up on my elbows
instantly. “What do you mean? It’s not just a simple interview?”
Janine seems confused. “No, Ms. Van Gatt. Your dad told me you will
be interviewed live for their social media channels. How incredible, isn’t
it?”
“Live?” I feel like throwing up. I stand up from the bed and run as fast
as I can to my bathroom. There, my knees on the floor, I throw up all my
anxiety in the toilet.
Janine shakes her head. “Oh, Ms. Van Gatt, I’m so sorry to have scared
you. Are you alright? Do you want to take something to help control your
panic attack?”
I take a deep breath with my head down and wait, making sure there’s
nothing left before standing again. “Oh, Janine, I’ve never done a live
interview. What if something goes wrong? Everyone will see it.”
“Nothing will go wrong. Don’t worry, Miss. It’s a quick five-minute
interview. You have to relax. All you need is a yummy breakfast. I’ll make
some pancakes. What do you think?”
“No, I’m fine, thank you, Janine. A matcha tea, that’s all.”
“Miss, you need to eat something. Just avocado toast, then.”
“I’m fine, Janine, really. I’m not hungry.”
I jump into a warm shower, wondering how I’ll manage to remain in
one piece in front of the camera, but one thing is for sure: I have to fight my
agoraphobia. I can’t let my fear come back and haunt me again.
Columbia Economics, January 22, 2020
The interview was such a smashing success on social media that Chloe, the
reporter, received approval to publish it in their biweekly printed magazine.
“Success in Art: How Petra Van Gatt Is Shaping the Future of Alternative
Investments.” Such a big exaggeration, dear God. The feature was three
pages long with a big, colorful picture of me, taken during the interview.
Surprisingly, I’ve become an overnight role model for all my freshman
colleagues who just a couple of days ago didn’t even know my name. I see
some of them whispering, their faces glued on me while I close my books
and laptop. The class is over, yet they are not leaving. “Congrats, Petra.
Nice interview!” they finally shout from their seats on the other side of the
auditorium. I nod and smile.
“Ms. Van Gatt?” Mrs. Chilnisky is now right in front of me.
“Yes?”
“I saw your interview in Forbes magazine. Very well done.
Congratulations on your fund.”
I smile, humbled. “Thank you, Mrs. Chilnisky.”
“Petra, on February fifteenth, we are hosting a panel of highly talented
and entrepreneurial students. Students who already have a successful career
or venture on the side. I would truly appreciate if you could join us.”
I raise both eyebrows and, to my surprise, find myself nodding at her.
Standing behind the door, I glance discreetly at the big, dark auditorium
where over three hundred students have gathered. There’s a stage in front
with a big sofa already in the spotlight, two screens behind it, and two big
cameras on the edges.
“Oh God. Have you seen the number of people in there?”
“They are all excited to see you,” Matthew cheers me up. “It’s amazing,
Petra. You’ll be fine. I think a lot of business channels are out there too.
You’re gonna meet so many journalists.”
Despite Matthew’s attempts to comfort me, I’m not feeling amazing at
all. “Give me a second.” I run to the bathroom to calm myself down before
stepping on stage. I’m glad Alex and Dad are far away in Singapore.
Having them in the crowd would have been even worse. I try to breathe
slowly, but the acid in my stomach comes up. I rush to one of the toilets and
throw up. No one at Columbia knows I suffer from panic attacks or
agoraphobia, and it’s better to keep it that way.
I take my dental kit from my purse, brush my teeth, and put some blush
on my cheeks to hide how pale I am. Then I smear gloss on my lips, and try
smiling at the mirror. I observe myself attentively. I realize I’ve lost some
weight, as my collarbone is more visible than usual and my arms look
skinnier too. I can’t let my phobia get in the way, yet eating is hard. So
hard. Any type of food feels repugnant. I glance at my chest and smile—
well, at least this part of my body looks the same, if not bigger.
I focus on my breath, inhaling and exhaling deeply, but my heart is
thundering. I’ve never been on stage before, let alone spoken about myself
in front of cameras, journalists, and my own colleagues.
He’s finally back from Singapore! And furthermore, Julia is in town. Alex
has planned a small celebration in my honor over the weekend. Nothing too
fancy—just a small dinner between us three. He saw my interview onstage
and said he couldn’t believe how I’d managed to remain so calm during the
entire panel. He also added I’d acted just like Dad, strong and confident,
even if I was terrified inside.
“Julia! I’m so happy you’re here.”
“Me too, my dear Petra.” We hug each other before kissing each other’s
cheeks. “Congratulations on your interview and your panel at Columbia.
My brother shared it with me.”
“Oh, it’s nothing, really.”
Julia glances at my figure. “Have you been on a diet? You look even
thinner than when I met you.”
“I’m fine. Don’t worry.” I hold Julia by the arm, walking her into the
dining room. “So, tell me, what brings you to New York?”
Julia sits in front of me, with Alex between us at the head of the table.
“Well, just a quick getaway.”
Maria prepared a special feast for today’s celebration. After all, she’s
known Julia since she was born. She cooked her favorite meal: pea soup,
followed by andijviestamppot—a pan full of Dutch mashed potatoes and
escarole endive—accompanied with meatballs for Julia and tofu for me.
Alex also decides to have the tofu. I smile at his choice. He knows I don’t
like him to consume meat.
While Maria seems extremely happy to see everyone enjoying the meal,
she couldn’t help but frown looking at my plate. “You didn’t like the food,
Ms. Van Gatt?”
“The food was great, Maria. Thank you. I’m just not hungry.”
“You are so skinny, Petra. You need to eat a bit,” adds Julia, seeing half
of the soup still in my bowl. “It’s only vegetables.”
“I’m fine, Julia, really… Don’t worry.”
Julia exchanges a glance with Alex. He wipes his mouth and looks at
me. “Petra, would you mind checking on Arthur? Maria will escort you.”
“Well, I won’t serve you any whiskey, since I know you don’t drink.” I
prepare one for myself and invite Julia into the sitting area of my office.
She sits on the sofa against the wall, a glass of water in hand, while I take
the armchair beside her.
“So, tell me”—I take the first sip—“what brings my lovely sister to
New York?”
“This.” Julia plays a video on her iPhone and turns it to me. It’s Tess
Hagen giving an interview to NPO 1, the biggest national TV channel in the
Netherlands.
“So, Tess is really getting into politics…”
“Yes, looks like she is officially tied to the CDA. Provincial elections
are next month and the national ones are next year. She’s been gathering big
audiences and public support. I’m not sure what she has in mind. My
husband is worried about what she knows and what she might do…”
“I see… And how can I help?”
“Alex.” Julia glances discreetly around. “You didn’t propose to Petra
yet, right?”
“No, not yet. Roy wants me to break up with her.” I pause. “But I’m
incapable of doing it.”
“Tess knows too much. She made it clear she will expose us. There are
too many people involved, too many families. Our mother has made so
many sacrifices—”
“Julia,” I snap to calm her down. “I’m very aware of what Tess knows,
but”—my gaze drops, I let out a deep breath, then look my sister in the eye
again—“I can’t live without Petra either. I just can’t.” There is some sort of
melancholia in my voice, as I know all too well that distance from her body
doesn’t mean distance from her.
“I know…” She leans closer to me, her face sharing the same pain. “Do
you want us to take care of Tess?”
I’m not surprised by her question. After all, I know what’s at stake.
“Julia, despite Tess being a threat, she’s still Petra’s mother. And Roy is
also firmly against it.”
“But she’s a threat to your happiness,” Julia protests instantly. “Our
happiness!” I feel her gaze studying me for a moment. “No one will know.
We’ve got people who are very discreet…”
“I know, Julia, but I can’t do it. Promise me no one will harm Tess.” My
sister doesn’t reply. She looks away, her face distant and displeased by my
answer. “Julia, if something happens to Tess, I won’t hide the truth from
Roy and Petra.”
“Fine. But what are you going to do? Are you gonna break the heart of
the only woman you’ve ever truly loved? That’s your plan?”
I shut my eyes and rub my eyelids. “Roy gave me until March sixth to
do so. Afterward, I’m moving to Singapore.”
I didn’t feel his touch last night. Granted, I was tired and fell asleep
immediately, but when I wake up, I don’t see him either. He seems colder
and more distant, talking and laughing with me less. The way he looks at
me is also quite unrecognizable. He used to whisper how much he loved me
and what he wanted to do to me, but with these many trips to Singapore, it
all feels so far behind. I wonder what happened. I’ve got to talk to him.
Maria said he’s in his office. I knock on the door before stepping inside.
I find him casually sitting on the sofa, reading with his glasses on. He
closes his book upon seeing me. “Good morning, little hermit.”
Holy… I feel myself waking up just now at his warm words and
beautiful smile. “Hey.”
“Did you sleep well?”
I nod and sit beside him. My heart starts racing as I look into his tender
blue eyes. Oh God, I’ve missed them so much. And his scent, his lips, his
wild hair…
He smiles at me, caressing my cheek, and places a lingering kiss on my
lips—one that enflames my heart faster than a lighter.
But I want more than that.
I lean forward to reach his mouth again, straddling him, and hold his
jawline while I hungrily devour him. “I love you,” I whisper.
His eyes locked on mine, he beams at me and strokes my long hair. “I
love you so much, Petra.”
Then he presses his lips against mine once more, but this time with such
urgency and fervor that I feel how intensely he’s missed me. “I love you so
much,” he repeats, his voice barely audible, holding me tight in his arms.
He starts lifting my sweater up. I help him strip it off. I’m not wearing a bra
underneath. He returns to my mouth, but as he glances at my tits, his lips
twist into a naughty smile. I know they somehow look bigger, swollen—my
areolas too. He fondles my left nipple very slowly with his thumb before
sucking it into his mouth.
I whimper at the touch. “I’m sorry, I’m slightly more sensitive lately.”
He looks hungry. “They are bigger…” And by the sound of his voice,
maybe even starving. “If I touch them with my fingers like this, does it
hurt?”
“A bit,” I mumble. He bites his bottom lip while staring intently at
them. From my chest, he traces a line with his fingers. When he lowers his
gaze to my belly, I decide to get off his lap.
I reach for my top, put it back on, and change the subject. “Why didn’t
you sleep with me last night?”
“I did sleep with you. Julia told me you were exhausted and needed rest,
so I just got up early.”
“Where is she, by the way?”
“She went back to the Netherlands.”
“She just came here for one night?”
“Indeed, she has work on Monday.” He grabs my hand and pulls me
over to sit on his lap. “I’m very proud of you, Petra. I know it’s not easy for
you to go through these interviews, be on these panels, and meet all these
journalists. Julia doesn’t know how hard it is for you to do all this, but she
is right. You can’t stop eating. I called the doctor this morning. He told me
eating disorders are quite common among agora- and social phobias, but
you can’t let yourself down.”
“I know,” I sigh. “Dad reminds me of that all the time.”
“Promise me you will eat? Maria made a soup—it has nothing in it but
vegetables.”
I roll my eyes. “Okay, fine. I’ll eat.”
“Thank you.” He tenderly kisses my forehead. “And kindly go for a
checkup when you can. You haven’t seen a doctor since October.”
“Pfff. You’re worse than Dad. Fine, I will go this week.”
Emma Hasenfratz
I’m speechless. She is crazy, crazy, crazy! Way beyond any craziness I’m
capable of! Damn, I can’t believe babygirl is getting engaged and having a
baby. Fuck, she doesn’t waste time. While I was looking for some juicy
details, this is definitely not what I was expecting.
“Wow.” That’s all I manage to say. “Well, in that type of sweatshirt, I
can’t see anything. May I see under?” Petra knows I locked the door, so she
stands and lifts up her loose garment. Holy moly! She really is pregnant!
“Hmm, so far it just looks like you ate twenty big pancakes,” I reassure her.
“But I agree, Van Dieren might ask you why you’re so bloated. Did he
already bend the knee? I don’t see a ring…”
“No, not yet, and I don’t know why, Emma. It’s driving me crazy.
Maybe his mother didn’t approve, maybe he found out about my pregnancy,
maybe he just gave up… I’m so confused. I thought he was ready for this.
Since my classes started, he has been going back and forth to Singapore
with Dad, and we haven’t talked about it anymore.”
The more Petra talks, the more lost I am. I feel a sudden urge to light up
a cigarette, but now that I know Petra’s secret, I decide to refrain.
I have an idea, but I’m 99 percent sure Petra will reject it. Nevertheless,
I ask, “Have you considered… well… an abortion?”
“Of course not. I just came from an ultrasound. The baby is healthy and
growing so fast. I want to keep it. We have all the means in the world to
raise it. Alex is mature enough to be a father. He’s forty, after all.” Right,
keep dreaming. Petra’s stubborn as always, but seriously, is Van Dieren
ready to be a father? I know Petra is romanticizing the most important man
in her life. She is delusional. Very delusional. After all, it’s not for nothing
that I call her “babygirl.” Sometimes Petra can be as naive as one.
My heart keeps thundering nervously. “Well, if you want to have this
child, then you should have it. It’s your call. But it’s a decision that might
bring painful consequences…”
“Such as?”
Such as the harsh reality of life. I try to be gentle, but I’ve got to prepare
babygirl for the worst-case scenario. “Well, such as Van Dieren breaking up
with you, your dad disowning you… But don’t worry—there’ll always be a
room for you here.” Petra takes it as a joke. But I mean it.
“They’d never do such a thing.” She thinks a bit more. “Right?”
I take a deep breath and search for the best words to explain as gently as
possible what I have in mind. “Petra, relationships can only survive and
thrive if both parties are honest with each other. And you’re basically
betraying their trust. You’re about to get engaged to your father’s best
friend and business partner, which is literally putting his relationship on the
line for you. The only thing your dad’s asking in return is for you to
graduate before starting a family.” I sigh. “If you don’t want to end your
pregnancy, then the very least you should do is tell them the truth before
they find out. I’m surprised the clinic hasn’t called your father yet.”
“Actually... I’ve been going there under the fake ID you gave me.” We
fall silent, while Petra continues processing everything I’ve told her. “Do
you think they will forgive me?”
I cringe at her question. “I’m gonna be straight-up honest with you,
babygirl…” I don’t want to, but I’ve got to. “I don’t think Van Dieren will
propose after you tell him.”
Petra gasps in terror. “Why? Just because I hid it from him?”
“No, because you lied to him and he made a promise to his best friend
based on it. You know how serious Van Dieren is about keeping his word.
Maybe you should talk to your father first…”
“Dad first? I think Alex will be easier to get on my side than Dad—after
all, it’s his child too.”
“Hmm, just be careful. If you need anything, call me. These type of men
freak out when things are out of their control.” I hold Petra very tightly for
longer than usual. “You know I will always have your back, right?”
Petra smiles. “I know.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 33
I’ve pondered Roy’s ultimatum for over two months now. And throughout
this time, half spent in Singapore, I know two things with absolute
certainty: one, I love Petra more than my own self, and two, if I can’t marry
her, I shouldn’t have her. I started this romantic relationship solely so I
could spend the rest of my life with Petra, not as my goddaughter, but as my
wife. If our relationship is doomed to never evolve, then we shouldn’t
continue any further. And as Roy once said, she’s still so young—she has
her entire life to meet someone else. I hate the idea that Tess Hagen will
win, but that woman is so evil, she would do anything and beyond to
destroy me, Roy, and anyone else if needed. The impact it’d have on Petra’s
life, reputation, and health might be even worse than breaking up with her.
I invited Petra over to talk. A talk I never expected to have. I sent my
driver to pick her up while I wait in my office with a Macallan in hand, the
fourth glass of the day and it’s only three p.m.
Incredible how this office has witnessed so many hard talks: the talk I
had with Roy, not so long ago, regarding my feelings toward his daughter
and my intention to marry her; the talk with Julia asking me if I would
approve the assassination of Petra’s mother; and now, the worst of them all,
putting an end to all of this—killing myself, it feels like.
I hear knocking. The door opens.
I can’t help but smile at the sight of her—she’s wearing a loose white
sweatshirt, her usual jeans, and a pair of white sneakers. Her cherry lips
smile back at me, her skin glowing, her eyes sparkling. She looks like she’s
going to run in my direction like a kid, and she does. I welcome her with a
kiss, tasting her lips one last time, but she probably feels the bitterness in
my heart more than anything else.
“What’s wrong?” She knows me so well.
“Petra, have a seat.” I invite her to sit where her father sat before. But
Petra is not Roy and she doesn’t obey. Instead, she studies my face, my
expression…
“Tell me,” she insists again. I look down but remain speechless. “Wow,
seems serious.”
“It is,” I reply, but nothing further seems to come out.
Despite Janine’s insistence that Mr. Van Gatt was not available, I run into
his office/library and fling the door wide open. “Roy, I need to talk to you.”
Roy shuts his book abruptly. He turns his face toward the entrance of
the room and gestures to Janine, who leaves, closing the door behind her.
“Sounds serious. What is it about?”
“Petra took my car and ran away,” I begin. “I spoke to Maria, Emma,
my sisters—no one knows where she is. I called her, texted her, nothing.”
“What? Okay, calm down,” says Roy, mainly to himself. “She must be
somewhere nearby. Let me call her.” He puts the call on speaker, and we
wait, wait, and wait… “Not answering. Let me call Emma…” Emma
answers. “Emma? It’s Roy. Is Petra with you?”
“Nope, she told me she’s spending the weekend at Van Dieren’s.”
“Well, unfortunately, she took his car and left. She’s not at home
either… If she calls you, could you kindly let me know where she is?”
“Sure.”
“Thank you.” Roy hangs up. “Emma won’t say a word to us. But I think
you’re right. Petra ran away. I’ll call some people. They should be able to
track her down.”
“Her phone is no longer in service. She probably threw it away and got a
new one,” concludes one of the agents sitting in Roy’s office, eyes glued to
his laptop.
I feel myself losing my temper. “I can’t believe this! So, she doesn’t
want us to know where she is?” I look back at Roy in fury. “This is because
of you. See? I never wanted to break up with her. I never should have
listened to you!”
“You did the right thing,” he snaps. “We just have to find her, bring her
home, and everything will be okay. Then you will go to Singapore as
planned.”
“No. Once we find her, I’ll tell her the truth, Roy. And I will propose.
My decision is made.”
“Don’t even think about it, Van Dieren!”
“She is pregnant,” I announce.
Roy gasps in shock, instantly falling onto the sofa behind him. There he
remains livid, speechless, and paralyzed. But I’ve got more to say. “I might
lose everything, but I won’t lose her. She’ll be my wife, whether you and
Tess like it or not.”
He rubs his eyelids before looking back at one of the agents. “Did you
manage to track his car?”
“We are working on it, Mr. Van Gatt.”
“Then work harder!”
We hear knocking.
“Mr. Van Gatt?” Janine steps quietly inside, a phone in hand. “I know
where your daughter is…” she mumbles gravely, head down.
“Well, Janine, where is she?” Roy snarls. But Janine remains mute and
still. “Speak, for God’s sake!”
“The police called… Oh, poor little girl…” She shakes her head,
sniffling.
“Janine, speak!”
She quickly dries her tears and looks up at Roy. “There was an accident.
She’s at Pennsylvania Hospital in Philadelphia.” Her voice gets lower,
harder to understand through her sobbing. “The car crashed into a truck.
Oh, dear Lord…”
I’ve got to close my eyes at the intensity of the punch to my chest. It
can’t be true; it can’t be Petra! “In Philadelphia? She left New York? Are
you sure it’s her, Janine?”
“They found her ID in her purse, Mr. Van Dieren. That’s how they
reached us.”
“How is she?” Roy asks.
“Janine, tell us! How is she?”
“She’s not conscious… The doctors advised to come as soon as
possible.”
With a defiant glare, Roy looks back at the agent sitting on his chair.
“Get us a helicopter. We’ll leave now.”
If there’s one thing we mutually agreed upon and respected these last
seventeen years, it was that I would never step foot in New York and Roy in
Rotterdam. We each have our territory, our cities—our space. Roy rarely
comes to the Netherlands, and I, a proud born and raised Rotterdammer,
never much enjoyed the other side of the Atlantic either. But today I’m
landing on American soil after seventeen years.
I nearly collapse when I find out my daughter is in a coma. Roy and
Alexander are standing near the closed door, faces down and serious. They
don’t know what to say or do—the duo remain speechless.
“The doctors said they should be able to remove the bandages in four
weeks,” mumbles Roy after a long silence.
I want to cry out loud, but the rage and hate I have for these men is so
grave, so deep, that I place a tender kiss on my daughter’s forehead, stand
up from the bed, and make a life-changing decision. “I’m moving to New
York to take care of her. Enough is enough!”
“You’re not moving here. Forget it, Tess!” barks Roy. “Alexander is
leaving for Singapore. You won’t have to worry about him anymore,” he
reassures me.
“I’m not going anywhere,” rebukes Van Dieren, looking at us. “Tess, I
truly love her. More than anything in life. You are hurting her as much as
me. Just accept it and move on. Let her be happy with me.”
“Never, Van Dieren!” I point my index finger at him in disgust. “You’re
a fucking disgusting pervert! This relationship is cursed! This is not love—
this is a cruel and twisted obsession! You better go to Singapore, unless you
want to lose everything!”
Van Dieren doesn’t say a word. He starts rubbing his eyelids and takes a
deep breath before looking me in the eye again. “I won’t disappear again
without saying goodbye,” he adds feebly. “Let me take care of her until she
wakes up.” But I remain mute, unmoving. “I just lost a baby and the woman
I love, for God’s sake! Can’t you at least do that?”
I consider his request while observing his eyes fill with tears. “If God is
merciful with her and grants her a second chance, you better forget this
relationship once and for all,” I snarl. “She can stay with you in New York,
but I’ll choose the physician who will monitor her condition on a daily
basis. And once she wakes up, you tell her goodbye, and you are gone—for
good. Are we clear?” He nods. “If you ever try to see Petra afterward…” I
squeeze my lips together, head shaking. “I swear to God, I’ll make sure the
entire world knows what both of you did.”
“Tess, enough! It’s time for you to leave.”
“That’s alright,” interposes Van Dieren. “I’m going outside to get some
fresh air.”
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 34
OceanofPDF.com
CHAPTER 35
They told us she should wake up two weeks after her accident. Then four.
And, well, now they just say she should wake up before the end of the year.
Nothing makes sense to me. Her brain is stable, her lungs too. She breathes
normally on her own, but she doesn’t wake up. Science feels futile and in
vain, at times like this. Petra remains a total mystery to every physician we
have seen. A complex paradox that no one understands despite the
countless tests and brain scans. She should be awake, they’ve said
repeatedly. Yes, she should. But she is not.
Madama Butterfly, an Italian opera, is playing from the speakers. The
dramatic female voice in the second act resonates against the walls of my
bedroom.
I remain motionless, living in the chair beside my bed, where Petra has
been lying since the day she was transferred from the hospital.
Every single day, I wish she’d wake up so I could see her big blue eyes
one last time. But they remain closed, as if she knows that once she wakes
up, I’ll have to say goodbye.
A Macallan in one hand and an envelope in the other, my eyes are also
shut, tired of this world, tired of myself, tired of life. I try to control the
headache, but it’s become the normal state of my mind, and I don’t care
anymore.
The door opens, but I don’t even blink.
“Alex, it’s two a.m. You can’t continue like this. You’re becoming an
alcoholic,” scolds Roy, stepping into my bedroom. “I moved here to give
you moral support—me, not the whiskey.”
“You know what day it is?” I ask, drinking a bit more, my eyes still
closed.
He lets out a deep breath. “August twenty-seventh.”
I reach for my forehead, pressing the cold glass against my boiling skin,
and try to contain the pain consuming me.
I focus on the sound of the female opera singer—her angelic voice
reminds me of Petra. She sings “Un bel dì vedremo” from Act II. I love this
opera, but I never thought Petra’s fate would be as tragic.
“And according to the letter from this clinic, our baby’s due date.” I
empty my glass and swallow hard. “I just want to die, Roy. Seeing her like
this destroys me.”
“She’ll wake up, Alex. The doctors said she’ll wake up,” he repeats, his
voice heavier. “I’m sure she’s fighting internally to wake up.”
But I’m in tears, my head shaking as I recall every moment before she
left this house. “I’d give my life in a second to save hers. There is not a
single day that goes by that I don’t think about that horrible argument.” I
sniffle. “Maybe Tess is right—maybe our relationship has always been
cursed…”
“Nonsense.” Roy stops the music, walks a few steps over, and puts a
hand on my shoulder. “Look, at seven years old, my daughter screamed out
loud in the middle of the dinner table what she felt for you… And if you
look back, she predicted this relationship from the very beginning. There
are things in life we simply cannot explain.” He starts patting me
consolingly. “I’m so sorry you can’t be together. Believe me, I am.”
“I know, Roy.” I sigh and look up at her. “In my heart, Petra will always
be my wife, no matter what she does with her life once she wakes up.” I
take the box from my pocket and contemplate the engagement ring once
more. “This ring is hers. It always will be.” I smile as I let my mind picture
her wearing it. But I force such thoughts away, close the box, and put it
back in my pocket. “I just want her to wake up. She doesn’t deserve this.”
I hear nothing but his breathing. With no further words to add, Roy just
glances at his watch. “I’m gonna get some sleep. Try to do the same.” And
he takes the glass from my hand. “We said no more whiskey.”
Afterward, he leans forward and places a kiss on his daughter’s
forehead. “Come back soon, Petra,” he whispers. “We love you.”
Sunlight timidly shines through the windows of the bedroom. It feels like
morning. It’s hard to keep my eyes open. My body feels like stone, and I
don’t even try to move my legs. Instead, I try to move the fingers of my
right hand. But I feel something holding them. I manage to turn my face.
Petrified by what I’m seeing, I blink many times, but I’m still lost.
“Hey,” I breathe. He’s sitting on a chair, asleep. His arms are perched on
the edge of my bed, his hand on mine. I move my fingers again, feeling his
palm. It feels real. Very real. Alex wakes up. I smile at him. He blinks,
looks around, and blinks again. “Hey,” I repeat feebly.
He smiles in return. Tears of joy start rolling down his face. The
emotion consumes him, and he lets himself cry. “Oh God,” he sobs. “Hey.”
He leans forward to kiss my forehead, and I feel his tears wetting my face.
But I’m beyond dazed and confused. “Where am I? I didn’t kill you.
Why are you here?” I ask quietly, my voice weak.
He raises his eyebrows. “Um, you’re here at home. Bedford Hills. In
our bedroom.”
“But... I just killed myself. Why am I here?”
I see him struggling to find a viable answer. “Maybe you were fighting
internally so you could escape your subconscious and come back here, to
the real world.”
“My subconscious?” I repeat. “You mean…” My face beams at him.
“You mean, I’m alive?”
“Yes. You are alive.” He kisses my hand repeatedly, drying his tears on
my skin.
“What day is it?” I ask.
“August twenty-seventh.”
Suddenly I remember everything: the baby, the fight, the truck crashing
into his car while I was on the phone with Emma… I close my eyes, my
smile vanishes, and my face falls. I bring a hand to my flat belly. I’m so
heartbroken that I can barely breathe, but nevertheless I murmur, “It was a
girl.” It was.
He drops his stare, trying to find the right words, but there are none. “I
know.” He sniffles. “I found the ultrasound in your purse.” He closes his
eyes, trying to contain the tears already wetting his cheeks. “Will you ever
be able to forgive me?”
I don’t reply immediately. I look at him again; I’ve never seen him so
dejected. I want to reassure him, but instead, to my biggest surprise, I give
him the answer that comes from my heart. “I don’t know,” I confess
sincerely.
His eyes lock with mine. “Do you still love me?”
I chuckle. “So much. And you?”
“I never stopped loving you, Ms. Van Gatt.” He shuts his eyes and
kisses my hand. “Never.”
I caress his stubble, looking at him tenderly. Then I let out a sigh and
ponder for a moment. “May I ask you something?”
“Anything, Petra.”
Before I do, I observe him attentively. He looks miserable and tired. His
face seems older, with wrinkles I’ve never seen before. I can see how his
countenance has changed too. It’s now so melancholic, so gloomy…
Nevertheless, I hold his hand tight, look straight into his piercing blue
eyes, and, determined to give him a second chance, I proudly ask,
“Alexander Van Dieren, will you marry me?”
OceanofPDF.com
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
A big thank you to all of you for reading my debut novel. I’m so grateful
for the amazing support, positivity, and excitement you’ve shown, from my
community on social media, my friends and family, to coffee shop owners
where I hang out, etc., thank you so much!
Thank you so much to my editors from New York, Ann Leslie and
Katherine, and to my proofreader, Natalie Psaila. I’m so blessed to have met
you all.
To all the influencers and bloggers who have spent their free time
reading, reviewing, and sharing it online and offline. I love you guys!
To those who inspired me for the book:
My life partner, best friend, and compagnon de route, Diogo, thank you
for always standing by my side and trusting my craziness. Eight years with
you feel like eight minutes.
My Roy Van Gatt—my dear friend Roy, you are officially my first
reader, thank you for all your support, loyalty, and kind words.
Mom, because I can’t get enough of our philosophical chats over a good
meal and bottle of wine. I promise I’ll translate the book in French so you
can read it.
And, not that surprisingly, my own private school in Portugal, who is
over seventy years old now, and gave me the best memories a teenager
could dream. Thank you to empower the arts; from the studies of History of
Art & Culture, to painting classes, dance, music, and acting—thank you.
Currently working on the second book of the series. All I can say is; it’s
gonna be wild.
OceanofPDF.com
Melanie Martins writes provocative love stories laced with thriller, anti-heroes, controversies, and
erotism. She believes unconditional love is human’s biggest superpower along with kindness and
gratitude. When she is not behind her laptop writing, she can be found globetrotting, reading,
daydreaming, and sharing her adventures on social media such as Facebook, Instagram, Twitter, and
Goodreads.
Born in France and raised in Portugal, she currently lives in the beautiful Mediterranean island of
Malta.
OceanofPDF.com